Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n father_n scripture_n word_n 5,665 5 4.3306 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A08335 Spiritus est vicarius Christi in terra. A breefe and pithie summe of the Christian faith made in fourme of a confession, vvith a confutation of the papistes obiections and argumentes in sundry pointes of religion, repugnaunt to the Christian faith: made by Iohn Northbrooke, minister and preacher of the worde of God. Seene and allowed, according to the order appointed in the Queenes iniunctions.; Breefe and pithie summe of the Christian faith Northbrooke, John. 1571 (1571) STC 18663; ESTC S120959 288,552 342

There are 33 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

word_n be_v most_o diligent_o to_o be_v note_v and_o mark_v ▪_o for_o many_o comfortable_a lesson_n may_v be_v learn_v of_o they_o to_o the_o quiet_a of_o our_o own_o conscience_n and_o to_o the_o great_a comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n first_o and_o foremost_a true_o we_o learn_v that_o they_o shall_v take_v hold_n by_o faith_n upon_o the_o glad_a &_o joyful_a tiding_n of_o our_o salvation_n 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o word_n how_o that_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n do_v bring_v into_o this_o world_n &_o believe_v that_o god_n who_o do_v send_v he_o be_v become_v a_o most_o merciful_a &_o love_a father_n unto_o we_o be_v always_o ready_a for_o his_o son_n jesus_n christes_fw-fr sake_n who_o by_o his_o death_n have_v pacify_v his_o wrath_n and_o make_v atonement_n 〈◊〉_d he_o and_o we_o note_n to_o receive_v we_o unto_o his_o mercy_n and_o to_o pardon_v 〈◊〉_d all_o ou●_n sin_n have_v already_o everlasting_a life_n be_v as_o sure_a of_o it_o as_o if_o they_o be_v already_o in_o full_a possession_n of_o it_o triumph_v with_o their_o head_n in_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o we_o do_v receive_v it_o already_o in_o this_o life_n by_o faith_n kingdom_n we_o be_v already_o possess_v of_o it_o by_o hope_n &_o we_o be_v therein_o already_o confirm_v by_o holiness_n of_o life_n but_o how_o can_v it_o be_v verify_v that_o the_o faithful_a believer_n have_v everlasting_a life_n as_o be_v already_o in_o full_a possession_n of_o it_o if_o after_o their_o death_n and_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n hell_n they_o must_v be_v broil_v and_o roast_v in_o their_o purgatory_n fire_n by_o the_o space_n of_o vij_o year_n for_o every_o sin_n that_o they_o have_v commit_v in_o this_o life_n if_o their_o doctrine_n be_v true_a it_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n better_a for_o they_o that_o they_o have_v never_o be_v bear_v for_o they_o say_v that_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n do_v differ_v nothing_o from_o the_o unquenchable_a fire_n of_o hell_n save_v only_o that_o the_o one_o be_v everlasting_a and_o the_o other_o last_v but_o for_o a_o time_n be_v this_o the_o blissful_a rest_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v promise_n unto_o they_o that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n christ_n 14._o the_o spirit_n say_v that_o they_o shall_v after_o their_o death_n rest_n from_o their_o labour_n very_o that_o be_v a_o poor_a resse_n if_o when_o a_o man_n have_v toil_v and_o labour_v all_o the_o day_n long_o note_n he_o shall_v be_v fain_o to_o lie_v all_o night_n in_o a_o hot_a burn_a oven_n i_o judge_v he_o will_v not_o be_v very_o hasty_a to_o go_v unto_o his_o rest_n second_o here_o we_o shall_v mark_v that_o the_o true_a believer_n shall_v not_o come_v into_o judgement_n of_o condemnation_n judgement_n that_o be_v to_o sa●e_z nothing_o shall_v be_v lay_v to_o their_o charge_n no_o sin_n shall_v be_v impute_v unto_o they_o but_o through_o faith_n in_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v be_v account_v as_o righteous_a as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o commit_v any_o offence_n for_o why_o christ_n our_o saviour_n be_v make_v unto_o they_o 1._o righteousness_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n how_o can_v it_o be_v then_o that_o they_o must_v suffer_v such_o grievous_a pain_n in_o a_o fire_n which_o be_v altogether_o like_a unto_o hell_n fire_n as_o they_o say_v if_o no_o judgement_n shall_v be_v give_v against_o they_o no_o offendor_n be_v wont_a to_o suffer_v punishment_n except_o he_o be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v to_o it_o but_o the_o truth_n itself_o do_v say_v that_o they_o that_o believe_v shall_v not_o come_v into_o judgement_n or_o condemnation_n whereunto_o the_o apostle_n do_v say_v nulla_fw-la igitur_fw-la nunc_fw-la est_fw-la condemnatio_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la insiti_fw-la sunt_fw-la christo_fw-la jesu_fw-la 8._o qui_fw-la non_fw-la iuxta_fw-la carnem_fw-la versantur_fw-la sed_fw-la iuxta_fw-la spiritum_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v there_o be_v now_o no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n which_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n they_o therefore_o which_o do_v say_v and_o affirm_v that_o the_o faithful_a shall_v in_o the_o other_o world_n suffer_v the_o pain_n and_o punishment_n that_o be_v due_a to_o their_o offence_n and_o sin_n be_v direct_o against_o the_o scripture_n and_o word_n of_o god._n last_o of_o all_o this_o a●e_n we_o assure_v of_o that_o they_o which_o take_v hold_v upon_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n declare_v unto_o we_o in_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v already_o pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n meaning_n thereby_o that_o they_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o sting_n and_o power_n of_o death_n life_n which_o be_v sin_n and_o from_o all_o the_o penalty_n that_o be_v belong_v unto_o it_o and_o that_o there_o remain_v no_o more_o after_o this_o mortal_a life_n but_o to_o enjoy_v and_o possess_v that_o eternal_a &_o everlasting_a life_n that_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n have_v so_o dear_o buy_v and_o purchase_v unto_o we_o which_o thing_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v declare_v and_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o by_o many_o goodly_a &_o comfortable_a example_n 16._o for_o there_o do_v we_o read_v that_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o poor_a lazarus_n be_v dead_a his_o soul_n be_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n carry_v up_o into_o the_o bosom_n of_o abraham_n that_o be_v to_o say_v into_o joy_n and_o felicity_n again_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o thief_n that_o hang_v on_o a_o cross_n by_o christ_n 23._o do_v say_v remember_v i_o oh_o lord_n when_o thou_o come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n straight_o way_n our_o saviour_n christ_n give_v he_o this_o most_o comfortable_a answer_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o to_o day_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o my_o heavenly_a kingdom_n 24._o for_o so_o christ_n pray_v his_o father_n as_o john_n record_v in_o his_o gospel_n say_v ▪_o father_n i_o will_v that_o they_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o be_v with_o i_o even_o where_o i_o be_o that_o they_o may_v behold_v my_o glory_n so_o likewise_o the_o wise_a man_n in_o his_o book_n nay_o rather_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v 33._o the_o soul_n of_o the_o righteous_a be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o no_o torment_n shall_v touch_v they_o and_o whereas_o they_o do_v bring_v here_o a_o trick_n of_o their_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a sophistry_n trick_n say_v that_o the_o thief_n do_v obtain_v this_o free_a pardon_n at_o christ_n hand_n by_o a_o singular_a privilege_n which_o all_o man_n must_v not_o look_v to_o enjoy_v for_o privilege_n as_o the_o lawyer_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o man_n i_o do_v answer_n privilege_n that_o no_o man_n be_v save_v but_o by_o privilege_n which_o do_v only_o pertain_v unto_o the_o true_a and_o faithful_a believer_n and_o not_o to_o the_o unfaithful_a and_o reprobate_a in_o comparison_n of_o who_o the_o choose_a and_o elect_a of_o god_n be_v very_o few_o in_o number_n for_o though_o many_o be_v call_v 20._o yet_o few_o be_v choose_v and_o elect_v to_o these_o few_o do_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n belong_v and_o not_o unto_o all_o man_n so_o that_o the_o lawyer_n say_v shall_v also_o be_v verify_v in_o this_o point_n as_o then_o the_o poor_a lazarus_n and_o also_o the_o in_o rest_n and_o quietness_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o ungodly_a 〈…〉_o punishment_n until_o the_o body_n of_o those_o do_v ●se_a again_o unto_o life_n everlasting_a and_o the_o body_n of_o ●hese_n unto_o eternal_a death_n which_o be_v also_o call_v the_o second_o death_n 〈…〉_o plain_o do_v he_o yet_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 〈…〉_o before_o our_o eye_n the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o matter_n 5._o when_o he_o say_v 〈…〉_o locum_fw-la fides_fw-la catholicorum_fw-la divina_fw-la 〈◊〉_d regnum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d esse_fw-la 〈◊〉_d secundum_fw-la gehennam_fw-la vbi_fw-la omnis_fw-la apostate_n vel_fw-la à_fw-la christi_fw-la fide_fw-la alienus_fw-la aeterna_fw-la supplicia_fw-la experietur_fw-la tertium_fw-la penitu●_n ignora●●●_n 〈◊〉_d nec_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o scripture_n sanct●_n 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n by_o the_o divine_a 〈…〉_o that_o there_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o second_o 〈…〉_o be_v a_o hell_n fire_n wherein_o all_o apostate_n and_o all_o they_o that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n ▪_o do_v s●ffe●_n torment_n and_o pain_n no_o third_o play_n at_o all_o do_v we_o know_v nor_o find_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n place_n and_o 〈…〉_o place_n ▪_o he_o 〈…〉_o say_v he_o 〈…〉_o place_n the_o one_o 〈◊〉_d the_o everlasting_a kingdom_n and_o the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d the_o eternal_a 〈◊〉_d and_o again_o
verity_n of_o his_o body_n it_o be_v not_o convenient_a nor_o meet_a that_o the_o same_o that_o be_v in_o god_n 4._o shall_v be_v every_o where_o as_o god_n for_o the_o infallible_a scripture_n say_v of_o we_o that_o we_o be_v in_o god_n that_o we_o live_v and_o move_v in_o he_o and_o yet_o we_o be_v not_o in_o all_o place_n as_o he_o be_v and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o conclude_v say_v ne_o dubites_fw-la christum_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o aliquo_fw-la loco_fw-la celi_fw-la propter_fw-la very_fw-la corporis_fw-la modum_fw-la do_v not_o doubt_n christ_n to_o be_v in_o some_o certain_a place_n of_o heaven_n because_o of_o the_o property_n and_o form_n of_o a_o very_a body_n for_o he_o have_v say_v a_o little_a before_o christ_n in_o that_o he_o be_v god_n be_v every_o where_o or_o in_o all_o place_n and_o in_o that_o he_o be_v man_n he_o be_v in_o heaven_n again_o he_o say_v in_o a_o other_o place_n 30._o corpus_fw-la enim_fw-la domini_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la resurrexit_fw-la in_o uno_fw-la loco_fw-la esse_fw-la oportet_fw-la veritas_fw-la eius_fw-la ubique_fw-la diffusa_fw-la est_fw-la the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o which_o he_o rise_v can_v be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n but_o his_o truth_n be_v disperse_v every_o where_o 57_o again_o he_o say_v spatia_fw-la locorum_fw-la tolle_fw-la corporibut_fw-la et_fw-la nusquam_fw-la erunt_fw-la &_o quia_fw-la nusquam_fw-la erunt_fw-la nec_fw-la erunt_fw-la tolle_fw-la ipsa_fw-la corpora_fw-la qualitatibus_fw-la corporum_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la ubi_fw-la sint_fw-la &_o ideo_fw-la necesse_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la sint_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v take_v away_o from_o body_n limitation_n of_o place_n and_o the_o body_n will_v be_v no_o where_o and_o because_o they_o be_v not_o where_o they_o will_v be_v nothing_o take_v away_o from_o body_n the_o quality_n of_o body_n there_o will_v be_v no_o place_n for_o they_o to_o be_v in_o and_o therefore_o the_o same_o body_n must_v needs_o be_v no_o body_n at_o all_o 11._o again_o he_o say_v christus_fw-la secundum_fw-la presentiam_fw-la corporalem_fw-la in_fw-la luna_fw-la in_o sole_a &_o in_o cruse_n simul_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la potuit_fw-la christ_n as_o touch_v his_o corporal_a presence_n can_v not_o be_v in_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o moon_n and_o upon_o the_o cross_n at_o one_o tyme._n 21._o saint_z ciryll_o also_o say_v secundum_fw-la carnem_fw-la abiturus_fw-la erat_fw-la adest_fw-la autem_fw-la semper_fw-la virtute_fw-la deitatis_fw-la touch_v christ_n body_n or_o flesh_n it_o be_v go_v notwithstanding_o he_o be_v present_a always_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o godhead_n again_o nam_n &_o si_fw-la corpore_fw-la abfuero_fw-la tamen_fw-la presence_n ut_fw-la deus_fw-la ero_fw-la although_o i_o shall_v be_v absent_a in_o my_o body_n notwithstanding_o ibidem_fw-la i_o shall_v be_v present_a as_o i_o be_o god._n saint_n origene_n also_o speak_v most_o plain_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n as_o be_v man_n 32._o that_o be_v whersoever_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o his_o name_n neither_o christ_n as_o be_v man_n be_v with_o we_o all_o day_n unto_o the_o world_n end_n nor_o christ_n as_o be_v man_n be_v present_a with_o the_o faithful_a every_o where_o gather_v together_o but_o the_o divine_a power_n or_o nature_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n 30._o gregory_n a_o pope_n some_o time_n of_o rome_n say_v in_o the_o like_a sort_n verbum_fw-la incarnatum_fw-la manet_fw-la &_o recedit_fw-la manet_fw-la divinitate_fw-la recedit_fw-la corpore_fw-la the_o word_n incarnate_a do_v tarry_v and_o do_v go_v away_o do_v tarry_v and_o remain_v by_o his_o divinity_n and_o godhead_n do_v depart_v or_o go_v away_o by_o or_o in_o his_o body_n 1._o but_o yet_o vigilius_n martyr_n do_v make_v the_o matter_n more_o plain_a when_o he_o say_v if_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o word_n be_v all_o one_o how_o do_v it_o chance_n that_o whereas_o the_o word_n be_v every_o where_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o also_o find_v to_o be_v every_o where_o est_fw-la for_o when_o it_o be_v in_o earth_n true_o it_o be_v not_o in_o heaven_n and_o now_o that_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n true_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o earth_n and_o in_o so_o much_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o earth_n that_o we_o look_v that_o christ_n shall_v come_v from_o heaven_n touch_v his_o flesh_n who_o touch_v the_o word_n we_o believe_v to_o be_v always_o with_o us._n therefore_o after_o your_o opinion_n either_o the_o word_n be_v contain_v in_o place_n with_o his_o flesh_n or_o the_o flesh_n be_v everywhere_o with_o the_o word_n for_o one_o nature_n do_v conceive_v no_o contrary_a thing_n in_o itself_o but_o it_o be_v most_o contrary_a and_o unlike_a to_o be_v every_o where_o and_o to_o be_v contain_v in_o place_n i_o trust_v that_o we_o have_v already_o sufficient_o prove_v that_o although_o the_o humanity_n and_o godhead_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o joint_o join_v together_o in_o unity_n of_o person_n that_o the_o one_o can_v not_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o other_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o wheresoever_o the_o godhead_n be_v there_o the_o manhood_n and_o humanity_n must_v be_v also_o therefore_o when_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v sit_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n they_o shall_v be_v fain_a in_o despite_n of_o their_o heart_n there_o to_o understand_v with_o saint_n augustine_n christiano_fw-mi by_o the_o right_a hand_n a_o place_n of_o eternal_a rest_n felicity_n and_o joy_n where_o our_o saviour_n christ_n touch_v his_o manhood_n be_v accompany_v with_o all_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o with_o all_o the_o bless_a spirit_n and_o soul_n depart_v do_v reign_n with_o the_o father_n in_o coequal_a glory_n and_o majesty_n for_o that_o the_o same_o right_a hand_n whereon_o our_o saviour_n christ_n shall_v sit_v be_v a_o certain_a local_a place_n it_o evident_o appear_v by_o his_o own_o word_n where_o he_o say_v if_o any_o man_n do_v minister_v unto_o i_o let_v he_o follow_v i_o and_o where_o i_o be_o 17._o there_o shall_v my_o minister_n be_v also_o again_o i_o will_v that_o they_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v unto_o i_o be_v with_o i_o where_o i_o be_o that_o they_o may_v see_v my_o glory_n which_o thou_o have_v give_v unto_o i_o who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o he_o do_v here_o speak_v of_o some_o certain_a local_a place_n where_o his_o elect_a and_o choose_v shall_v be_v with_o he_o in_o everlasting_a glory_n and_o joy_n for_o touch_v his_o godhead_n his_o choose_a and_o elect_a be_v with_o he_o and_o he_o with_o they_o according_a to_o the_o promise_n that_o he_o have_v make_v unto_o we_o say_v behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n 14._o again_o if_o any_o man_n love_v i_o he_o keep_v my_o word_n and_o my_o father_n shall_v love_v he_o and_o we_o will_v come_v unto_o he_o and_o dwell_v with_o he_o therefore_o those_o place_n and_o text_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o christ_n be_v true_a and_o perfect_a man_n with_o who_o be_v in_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n all_o his_o faithful_a servant_n and_o minister_n shall_v be_v ▪_o else_o if_o they_o will_v still_o maintain_v stiff_o that_o christ_n touch_v his_o manhood_n can_v be_v every_o where_o they_o shall_v be_v fain_o to_o grant_v also_o that_o his_o faithful_a servant_n and_o minister_n be_v every_o where_o with_o he_o 12._o for_o he_o say_v where_o i_o be_o there_o shall_v my_o minister_n be_v also_o ¶_o the_o xiiij_o chapter_n ¶_o against_o popish_a transubstantiation_n this_o answer_n i_o know_v they_o will_v make_v sith_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v say_v objection_n hold_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o his_o hand_n 11._o this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n must_v needs_o be_v wheresoever_o the_o sacrament_n be_v minister_v though_o it_o be_v in_o ten_o thousand_o place_n at_o once_o for_o he_o say_v and_o they_o be_v make_v 148._o he_o command_v and_o they_o be_v create_v this_o be_v most_o certain_a &_o sure_a his_o word_n must_v be_v fulfil_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v as_o he_o say_v though_o we_o can_v not_o comprehend_v by_o our_o natural_a reason_n how_o it_o can_v be_v do_v or_o bring_v to_o pass_v 17._o moreover_o say_v they_o where_o as_o two_o witness_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v and_o confirm_v a_o truth_n we_o have_v four_o of_o the_o chief_a that_o ever_o be_v in_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o 11._o we_o have_v three_o of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o the_o bless_a apostle_n saint_n paul_n which_o do_v with_o a_o whole_a and_o full_a consent_n rehearse_v these_o word_n that_o we_o have_v allege_v which_o the_o truth_n himself_o do_v use_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o his_o sacrament_n all_o after_o one_o fashion_n which_o thing_n they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o our_o saviour_n
bread_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o kind_n or_o form_n of_o wine_n to_o the_o soul_n again_o it_o be_v take_v or_o receive_v under_o both_o kind_n for_o to_o signify_v that_o christ_n do_v take_v upon_o he_o both_o a_o human_a body_n and_o a_o human_a soul_n and_o also_o for_o to_o signify_v that_o the_o receive_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v available_a both_o to_o the_o flesh_n and_o also_o to_o the_o soul_n for_o if_o it_o be_v only_o receive_v under_o one_o kind_n it_o shall_v be_v signify_v that_o it_o be_v available_a only_o for_o the_o tuition_n and_o safeguard_n of_o the_o one_o harken_v what_o gerardus_n lorichius_n one_o that_o be_v a_o great_a defendor_n of_o transubstantiation_n canonis_fw-la &_o a_o papist_n for_o his_o life_n say_v to_o this_o matter_n they_o be_v false_a catholic_n say_v this_o man_n that_o be_v not_o ashamed_a by_o all_o mean_n to_o hinder_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n they_o to_o the_o intent_n the_o other_o kind_n of_o the_o sacrament_n may_v not_o be_v restore_v unto_o the_o lie_v people_n spare_v no_o kind_n of_o blasphemy_n for_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n say_v only_o unto_o his_o apostle_n papist_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v these_o take_v and_o eat_v you_o all_o of_o this_o here_o i_o beseech_v they_o let_v they_o tell_v i_o whether_o they_o will_v have_v these_o word_n also_o only_o to_o pertain_v unto_o the_o apostle_n heretic_n than_o must_v the_o lay_v people_n abstain_v from_o the_o other_o kind_n the_o bread_n also_o which_o thing_n to_o say_v be_v a_o heresy_n &_o a_o pestilent_a and_o a_o detestable_a blasphemy_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o each_o of_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v unto_o the_o whole_a church_n thus_o far_o lorichius_n the_o papist_n own_o doctor_n let_v they_o make_v what_o shift_n soever_o they_o will_v or_o can_v they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o clear_v themselves_o but_o that_o they_o be_v most_o abominable_a prophanatour_n of_o the_o lord_n sacrament_n and_o mystery_n and_o also_o most_o detestable_a and_o accurse_a sacriledger_n sith_o that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o rob_v the_o christian_n people_n for_o who_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v shed_v his_o most_o precious_a blood_n of_o the_o chief_a and_o most_o principal_a part_n of_o his_o sacrament_n but_o also_o do_v abstain_v themselves_o from_o it_o whensoever_o they_o listen_v have_v no_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o to_o do_v any_o such_o thing_n therefore_o we_o may_v turn_v the_o say_n of_o s._n basill_n against_o they_o who_o say_v these_o word_n 14._o who_o so_o forbid_v the_o thing_n that_o god_n command_v and_o who_o so_o command_v the_o thing_n that_o god_n forbid_v be_v take_v as_o accurse_v of_o all_o they_o that_o love_v the_o lord_n where_o you_o have_v do_v the_o like_a against_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o command_v what_o he_o have_v flat_o forbid_v your_o whole_a religion_n declare_v for_o through_o your_o own_o commandment_n you_o make_v god_n commandment_n of_o little_a force_n 15._o yea_o you_o have_v do_v contrary_a to_o your_o own_o law_n and_o decree_n decree_n which_o do_v excommunicate_v all_o those_o that_o dare_v presume_v to_o take_v half_a of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o leave_v the_o other_o half_o unreceave_v the_o bless_a martyr_n saint_n cyprian_n do_v say_v how_o shall_v we_o teach_v 2._o exhort_v and_o provoke_v they_o say_v he_o to_o shed_v their_o blood_n for_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n if_o we_o do_v deny_v or_o will_v not_o geve_v unto_o they_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n when_o they_o shall_v fight_v and_o stand_v manful_o in_o the_o quarrel_n of_o their_o master_n and_o lord_n christ_n or_o how_o shall_v we_o make_v they_o apt_a to_o drink_v the_o cup_n of_o martyrdom_n if_o we_o do_v not_o permit_v nor_o suffer_v they_o to_o drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o right_a tha●_z they_o have_v to_o communicate_v with_o we_o may_v not_o all_o man_n see_v and_o perceive_v by_o these_o few_o word_n of_o this_o holy_a and_o bless_a martyr_n what_o wrong_a and_o injury_n these_o antichrist_n do_v unto_o we_o 11._o haymo_n say_v appellatur_fw-la calix_fw-la communicatio_fw-la propter_fw-la participationem_fw-la quiae_fw-la omnes_fw-la communicant_a ex_fw-la illo_fw-la the_o cup_n be_v call_v the_o communication_n because_o of_o the_o participation_n for_o that_o every_o man_n receive_v of_o it_o this_o say_v he_o and_o yet_o no_o protestant_a nor_o caluenist_n if_o any_o war_n do_v chance_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n as_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o france_n and_o flaunders_n or_o if_o any_o persecution_n for_o his_o religion_n sake_n do_v happen_v they_o will_v geve_v we_o good_a leave_n to_o stand_v in_o the_o forefront_n of_o the_o battle_n yea_o they_o will_v thrust_v we_o forward_o and_o be_v ready_a themselves_o to_o shed_v our_o blood_n and_o yet_o they_o will_v not_o as_o much_o as_o suffer_v we_o once_o to_o receive_v the_o mystical_a cup_n of_o the_o lord_n blood_n whereby_o we_o shall_v be_v animate_v and_o encourage_v to_o shed_v our_o heart_n blood_n in_o the_o quarrel_n of_o his_o truth_n beside_o this_o any_o child_n may_v easy_o perceive_v by_o these_o few_o authority_n by_o i_o allege_v church_n that_o they_o be_v wont_v in_o the_o primative_a church_n to_o minister_v indifferent_o unto_o all_o man_n of_o what_o condition_n or_o estate_n soever_o they_o be_v the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n and_o that_o it_o be_v count_v a_o plain_a sacrilege_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o plain_a rob_n of_o god_n glory_n to_o do_v otherwise_o for_o they_o do_v always_o stick_v to_o the_o institution_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n till_o at_o the_o length_n in_o the_o abominable_a and_o sacrilegious_a counsel_n of_o constance_n objection_n a_o most_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a decree_n be_v make_v to_o the_o contrary_n many_o other_o reason_n be_v they_o wont_a to_o bring_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o accurse_a and_o detestable_a sacrilege_n if_o the_o mystical_a cup_n say_v they_o be_v indifferent_o minister_v unto_o all_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n board_n it_o may_v chance_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o spill_v which_o thing_n can_v not_o happen_v without_o a_o great_a slander_n in_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o for_o avoid_v of_o this_o offence_n that_o may_v happen_v by_o reason_n many_o have_v the_o palsy_n and_o fall_a sickness_n it_o have_v be_v appoint_v by_o the_o father_n that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v only_o minister_v under_o one_o kind_n belike_o our_o saviour_n christ_n answer_n the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n when_o he_o do_v first_o institute_v his_o sacrament_n can_v not_o by_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n foresee_v such_o thing_n nor_o yet_o the_o bless_a apostle_n saint_n paul_n when_o he_o do_v above_o xxuj_o year_n after_o his_o master_n ascension_n 11._o write_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n may_v not_o we_o by_o as_o good_a a_o reason_n because_o that_o many_o offence_n do_v daily_o arise_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n put_v down_o the_o scripture_n altogether_o as_o antichrist_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v where_o soever_o he_o bear_v any_o rule_n may_v we_o not_o with_o as_o just_a cause_n sith_o that_o many_o do_v surfeit_v by_o meat_n and_o drink_v and_o in_o their_o drunkenness_n do_v work_v mischief_n take_v away_o clean_o from_o they_o the_o use_n of_o meat_n and_o drink_v shall_v we_o because_o that_o good_a thing_n may_v through_o the_o naughtiness_n and_o negligence_n of_o man_n be_v misuse_v take_v away_o the_o right_a use_n of_o they_o or_o abolish_v therefore_o the_o institution_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god_o who_o have_v ordain_v and_o appoint_v such_o thing_n for_o the_o comfort_n &_o health_n of_o man_n let_v they_o geve_v a_o straight_a charge_n to_o their_o minister_n that_o they_o be_v sober_a and_o discrete_a when_o that_o they_o go_v about_o such_o holy_a mystery_n and_o that_o they_o take_v good_a heed_n to_o themselves_o that_o no_o such_o offence_n do_v arise_v through_o their_o negligence_n or_o rash_a behaviour_n if_o they_o will_v do_v so_o and_o suffer_v the_o holy_a institution_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o stand_v whole_a then_o shall_v they_o do_v well_o and_o please_v god_n high_o 15._o who_o require_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o true_a obedience_n towards_o his_o statute_n and_o law_n whereas_o in_o do_v as_o they_o do_v they_o declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v void_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o due_a obedience_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o all_o faithful_a christian_n and_o true_a servant_n of_o god._n domini_fw-la for_o we_o must_v be_v subject_a to_o god_n in_o obedience_n join_v
and_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o a_o mortal_a body_n in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n as_o than_o he_o do_v speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n be_v make_v man_n and_o have_v take_v our_o frail_a nature_n upon_o he_o so_o his_o son_n i_o mean_v our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v man_n that_o be_v to_o say_v touch_v his_o manhood_n and_o not_o touch_v his_o godhead_n be_v the_o image_n or_o figure_n of_o his_o substance_n for_o the_o image_n or_o figure_n of_o a_o thing_n must_v be_v visible_a and_o apparent_a to_o the_o eye_n else_o it_o can_v not_o be_v call_v a_o image_n or_o a_o figure_n but_o the_o godhead_n or_o divine_a substance_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v see_v no_o more_o than_o the_o divine_a substance_n of_o the_o father_n therefore_o he_o can_v not_o touch_v his_o godhead_n or_o divine_a substance_n be_v the_o image_n or_o figure_n of_o his_o father_n substance_n but_o only_o touch_v his_o humanity_n and_o manhood_n as_o he_o himself_o do_v testify_v say_v he_o that_o see_v i_o 12._o see_v the_o father_n and_o it_o ought_v to_o seem_v no_o strangeness_n that_o we_o say_v that_o christ_n touch_v his_o humanity_n or_o manhood_n be_v the_o image_n or_o figure_n of_o the_o father_n for_o if_o the_o first_o adam_n which_o notwithstanding_o that_o he_o be_v create_v in_o the_o estate_n of_o innocence_n can_v fall_v 4._o and_o break_v the_o commandment_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o be_v call_v the_o image_n of_o god_n how_o much_o more_o ought_v the_o second_o adam_n in_o who_o mouth_n no_o guile_n be_v find_v and_o which_o can_v not_o sin_v to_o be_v call_v the_o image_n of_o the_o father_n substance_n yea_o 1._o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v testify_v of_o we_o that_o when_o we_o be_v regenerate_v or_o bear_v a_o new_a we_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v not_o he_o by_o who_o spirit_n and_o word_n we_o be_v beget_v a_o new_a and_o regenerate_v be_v most_o lively_a and_o most_o effectuous_o the_o image_n of_o the_o father_n substance_n thus_o then_o may_v we_o conclude_v that_o as_o god_n do_v in_o these_o last_o day_n speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n be_v make_v man_n or_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o a_o mortal_a body_n so_o his_o son_n be_v man_n or_o touch_v his_o manhood_n be_v the_o image_n of_o his_o divine_a substance_n but_o no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o christ_n touch_v his_o humanity_n or_o manhood_n be_v one_o with_o the_o father_n in_o substance_n for_o that_o be_v to_o affirm_v that_o the_o father_n be_v a_o creature_n therefore_o the_o argument_n that_o they_o make_v upon_o this_o te●te_fw-la of_o paul_n affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o a_o thing_n that_o he_o be_v himself_o be_v not_o worth_a a_o blue_a button_n and_o though_o they_o will_v maintain_v still_o that_o this_o place_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o his_o divitie_z and_o godhead_n yet_o shall_v they_o win_v nothing_o by_o it_o for_o the_o greek_a have_v not_o the_o figure_n or_o image_n of_o his_o substance_n if_o they_o will_v go_v to_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o letter_n but_o the_o image_n or_o figure_n of_o his_o person_n ▪_o and_o take_v it_o so_o ▪_o i_o shall_v agree_v with_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a wherein_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n there_o be_v but_o one_o substance_n which_o the_o greek_n call_v vsia_n vsia_n and_o three_o person_n which_o they_o call_v hypostasis_n hipostase_n we_o do_v grant_v then_o after_o this_o interpretation_n that_o christ_n touch_v his_o divinity_n or_o godhead_n be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n but_o we_o will_v in_o no_o wise_a grant_n that_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n be_v all_o one_o for_o that_o be_v a_o plain_a heresy_n which_o ought_v in_o no_o wise_a to_o be_v suffer_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n let_v they_o turn_v themselves_o which_o way_n soever_o they_o will_v yet_o this_o place_n will_v help_v they_o nothing_o no_o more_o than_o the_o place_n above_o rehearse_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v fain_o to_o confess_v mawgrie_a their_o shave_a crown_n that_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v expound_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n as_o we_o do_v now_o expound_v they_o but_o how_o many_o place_n out_o of_o the_o doctor_n be_v i_o able_a to_o bring_v for_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v sacrament_n thus_o do_v the_o bless_a martyr_n s._n cyprian_n write_v chrismatis_fw-la dedit_fw-la itaque_fw-la dominus_fw-la noster_fw-la in_o mensa_fw-la in_o qua_fw-la ultimum_fw-la cum_fw-la apostolis_n participavit_fw-la connivium_fw-la proprijs_fw-la manibus_fw-la panem_fw-la &_o vinum_fw-la in_o cruse_n verò_fw-la manibus_fw-la militum_fw-la corpus_fw-la tradidit_fw-la vulnerandum_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o apostolis_n saecretius_fw-la impressa_fw-la sincera_fw-la veritas_fw-la &_o vera_fw-la sincaeritas_fw-la exponeret_fw-la gentibus_fw-la quomodo_fw-la vinum_fw-la &_o panis_fw-la caro_fw-la esset_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la et_fw-la quibus_fw-la rationibus_fw-la causae_fw-la effectibus_fw-la convenirent_fw-la &_o diversa_fw-la nomina_fw-la vel_fw-la species_n ad_fw-la unam_fw-la reducerentur_fw-la essentiam_fw-la &_o significantia_fw-la &_o significata_fw-la eisdem_fw-la vocabulis_fw-la censerentur_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o english_a the_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n which_o he_o keep_v with_o his_o apostle_n do_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n geve_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o upon_o the_o cross_n he_o do_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o soldier_n deliver_v his_o body_n to_o be_v wound_v that_o the_o sincere_a verity_n and_o the_o true_a sincerity_n be_v secret_o print_v in_o the_o apostle_n shall_v declare_v or_o expound_v unto_o the_o gentile_n how_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v blood_n and_o flesh_n and_o by_o what_o mean_v the_o cause_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o effect_n and_o how_o diverse_a kind_n and_o name_n shall_v be_v reduce_v or_o bring_v to_o one_o essence_n and_o the_o thing_n that_o signify_v and_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v signify_v call_v by_o one_o name_n saint_n augustine_n 57_o beside_o that_o place_n that_o i_o have_v already_o allege_v out_o of_o his_o epistle_n that_o he_o do_v write_v to_o bonifacius_n do_v in_o his_o book_n of_o question_n upon_o leviticus_fw-la say_v these_o word_n solet_fw-la autem_fw-la res_fw-la quae_fw-la significat_fw-la eiu●_n rei_fw-la nomine_fw-la quam_fw-la significat_fw-la nuncupari_fw-la sicut_fw-la scriptum_fw-la est_fw-la septem_fw-la spicae_fw-la septem_fw-la anni_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la dixit_fw-la septem_fw-la annos_fw-la significant_a et_fw-la septem_fw-la boves_fw-la septem_fw-la anni_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o multa_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la huic_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la petra_n erat_fw-la christus_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la dixit_fw-la petra_fw-la significat_fw-la christum_n sed_fw-la tanquaem_fw-la hoc_fw-la esset_fw-la quod_fw-la utique_fw-la per_fw-la substantiam_fw-la non_fw-la hoc_fw-la erat_fw-la sed_fw-la per_fw-la significationem_fw-la sic_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la quoniam_fw-la propter_fw-la vitalem_fw-la quandam_fw-la corpulentiam_fw-la animam_fw-la significat_fw-la in_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la anima_fw-la dictus_fw-la est_fw-la in_o english_a it_n be_v to_o say_v the_o thing_n that_o do_v signify_v be_v wont_a to_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o it_o do_v signify_v therefore_o it_o be_v write_v and_o the_o seven_o ear_n of_o corn_n be_v seven_o year_n and_o not_o the_o seven_o ear_n of_o corn_n do_v signify_v or_o betoken_v seven_o year_n and_o the_o seven_o cow_n be_v seven_o year_n and_o many_o such_o like_a place_n and_o thereof_o it_o come_v that_o it_o be_v say_v and_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n he_o say_v not_o the_o rock_n do_v betoken_v or_o signify_v christ_n as_o though_o it_o have_v be_v that_o thing_n in_o substance_n which_o be_v only_o in_o signification_n and_o because_o that_o the_o blood_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o certain_a lively_a substance_n do_v signify_v and_o betoken_v the_o soul_n therefore_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o blood_n be_v call_v the_o soul_n but_o the_o word_n that_o have_v be_v allege_v before_o out_o of_o his_o epistle_n to_o bonifacius_n 23._o make_v the_o matter_n most_o plain_a therefore_o i_o will_v think_v it_o no_o labour_n lose_v to_o repeat_v they_o again_o as_o they_o lie_v in_o latin_a first_o si_fw-mi enim_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la quandam_fw-la similitudinem_fw-la ▪_o earum_fw-la rerum_fw-la quarum_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la haberent_fw-la omnino_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la non_fw-la essent_fw-la exit_fw-la hac_fw-la autem_fw-la similitudine_fw-la plaerunque_fw-la etiam_fw-la ipsarum_fw-la rerum_fw-la nomina_fw-la accipiunt_fw-la sicut_fw-la ergo_fw-la secundum_fw-la quendam_fw-la modum_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la est_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la sanguis_fw-la christi_fw-la est_fw-la ita_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la fidei_fw-la fides_fw-la est_fw-la if_o the_o sacrament_n
contradiction_n or_o resistance_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v teach_v we_o clean_o contrary_n for_o they_o all_o testify_v unto_o we_o that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n have_v offer_v one_o oblation_n or_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n 1._o be_v set_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n for_o ever_o tarry_v there_o till_o his_o foe_n be_v make_v his_o footstool_n 10._o as_o it_o have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v before_o they_o do_v therefore_o allege_v in_o vain_a the_o omnipotency_n and_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n for_o to_o prove_v thereby_o their_o devilish_a and_o monstrous_a opinion_n anabaptist_n be_v in_o this_o point_n like_o unto_o the_o anabaptist_n which_o when_o they_o be_v so_o sore_o press_v with_o the_o scirpture_n that_o they_o know_v not_o which_o way_n to_o escape_v do_v fly_v straight_o way_n unto_o the_o spirit_n have_v than_o none_o other_o thing_n in_o their_o mouth_n but_o the_o spirit_n the_o spirit_n so_o these_o jolly_a fellow_n when_o they_o be_v beat_v with_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o have_v not_o one_o word_n to_o say_v will_v by_o and_o by_o with_o a_o great_a circumstance_n of_o word_n and_o fetch_v about_o allege_v the_o omnipotency_n and_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n papist_n set_v forth_o his_o wondrous_a work_n &_o miracle_n that_o he_o have_v wrought_v by_o it_o that_o so_o they_o may_v under_o the_o shadow_n of_o they_o deceive_v and_o blind_v the_o poor_a unlearned_a people_n which_o have_v no_o understanding_n nor_o perceiveraunce_n of_o thing_n papist_n these_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o goodly_a argument_n and_o reason_n that_o they_o do_v use_v if_o god_n have_v do_v this_o thing_n or_o that_o thing_n than_o will_v they_o bring_v in_o some_o excellent_a miracle_n that_o god_n do_v work_v in_o time_n paste_n may_v not_o he_o by_o his_o omnipotency_n and_o mighty_a power_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o his_o son_n christ_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n you_o may_v see_v how_o these_o new_a fangle_a fellow_n do_v most_o shameful_o deny_v the_o omnipotency_n of_o god._n god._n these_o and_o other_o like_a thing_n they_o do_v daily_o vomit_v out_o against_o the_o true_a minister_n of_o god_n word_n in_o their_o rail_a book_n and_o upon_o their_o alebenche_n where_o as_o they_o themselves_o be_v utter_a enemy_n and_o subver●ours_n of_o the_o omnipotency_n and_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n for_o they_o do_v preach_v and_o daily_o show_v teach_v and_o write_v use_n and_o also_o with_o fire_n and_o sword_n compel_v man_n to_o believe_v that_o christ_n can_v not_o geve_v unto_o we_o his_o flesh_n to_o eat_v except_o his_o natural_a body_n that_o he_o take_v of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n that_o die_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n be_v there_o in_o the_o sacrament_n ▪_o real_o and_o substantial_o in_o deed_n more_o like_o a_o monstrous_a thing_n than_o a_o human_a body_n whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o do_v both_o believe_v and_o teach_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v able_a by_o his_o everlasting_a and_o almighty_a spirit_n blood_n whensoever_o we_o do_v worthy_o receive_v his_o sacrament_n to_o feed_v with_o his_o most_o precious_a flesh_n and_o blood_n both_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n unto_o life_n everlasting_a and_o yet_o that_o he_o need_v not_o therefore_o to_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n nor_o to_o be_v after_o such_o a_o monstrous_a fashion_n in_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o wine_n for_o 1._o as_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o yet_o we_o need_v not_o to_o have_v it_o real_o present_a with_o we_o this_o for_o to_o be_v wash_v or_o bathe_v in_o it_o so_o christ_n our_o saviour_n accord_v to_o his_o promise_n do_v daily_o or_o whensoever_o we_o do_v come_v worthy_o to_o his_o holy_a table_n feed_v both_o our_o body_n and_o soul_n with_o the_o wholesome_a and_o heavenly_a food_n of_o his_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n and_o this_o do_v he_o by_o his_o eternal_a and_o almighty_a spirit_n so_o that_o he_o need_v not_o therefore_o to_o come_v down_o at_o the_o beck_n and_o commandment_n of_o every_o juggle_a papist_n and_o to_o be_v real_o present_a in_o a_o piece_n of_o their_o sterched_a bread_n after_o that_o they_o have_v with_o gape_v and_o blow_a speak_v four_o or_o five_o word_n upon_o it_o let_v any_o man_n that_o have_v any_o spark_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_o judge_n whether_o this_o manner_n of_o feed_v upon_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n which_o as_o i_o say_v be_v do_v by_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n do_v not_o in_o all_o point_n agree_v with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o with_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n who_o be_v never_o wont_a sith_o that_o of_o his_o own_o nature_n he_o be_v most_o true_a to_o do_v or_o work_v any_o thing_n against_o his_o own_o word_n and_o sacred_a scripture_n whereby_o we_o be_v certify_v that_o the_o heaven_n must_v hold_v our_o saviour_n christ_n 3._o till_o all_o thing_n be_v restore_v again_o that_o god_n have_v speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o his_o holy_a prophet_n since_o the_o world_n begin_v the_o example_n that_o they_o do_v bring_v of_o the_o walk_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n upon_o the_o water_n 20._o or_o of_o his_o come_n in_o to_o his_o disciple_n and_o apostle_n when_o the_o door_n be_v fast_a shut_v if_o they_o be_v well_o consider_v and_o look_v upon_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o to_o perceive_v and_o understand_v that_o they_o make_v nothing_o for_o they_o but_o rather_o against_o they_o for_o when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v walk_v upon_o the_o sea_n although_o he_o do_v it_o by_o his_o divine_a and_o godly_a power_n yet_o have_v he_o at_o the_o same_o present_a hour_n limb_n his_o true_a and_o natural_a body_n with_o due_a proportion_n of_o limb_n and_o all_o other_o dimension_n that_o do_v pertain_v to_o a_o man_n body_n so_o that_o he_o can_v then_o be_v see_v with_o the_o bodily_a eye_n of_o his_o apostle_n &_o take_v up_o sensible_o into_o the_o boat_n that_o they_o be_v in_o sacrament_n but_o no_o such_o thing_n will_v they_o allow_v in_o their_o monstrous_a be_v of_o christ_n his_o true_a and_o natural_a body_n in_o their_o sacrament_n therefore_o this_o example_n make_v not_o for_o they_o but_o against_o they_o now_o again_o where_o they_o say_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v go_v in_o to_o his_o apostle_n through_o the_o door_n be_v fast_a shut_v here_o they_o make_v a_o shameful_a lie_n lie_v for_o neither_o in_o the_o greek_a nor_o in_o the_o latin_a we_o shall_v find_v that_o it_o be_v write_v through_o the_o door_n be_v fast_o shut_v but_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v or_o when_o the_o door_n be_v fast_o shut_v whereby_o the_o evangelist_n do_v signify_v unto_o we_o the_o time_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n come_v in_o to_o his_o disciple_n for_o thereby_o may_v we_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v very_o late_o in_o the_o night_n when_o he_o come_v in_o to_o they_o as_o when_o any_o of_o we_o do_v say_v i_o come_v home_o by_o candle_n light_n season_n or_o when_o all_o the_o door_n be_v fast_o shut_v yet_o no_o man_n be_v so_o foolish_a as_o for_o to_o construe_v upon_o his_o word_n that_o he_o have_v light_o bear_v afore_o he_o or_o that_o he_o go_v in_o through_o the_o door_n but_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o speak_v we_o be_v wont_v to_o gather_v that_o it_o be_v late_o in_o the_o night_n when_o he_o come_v home_o peter_n moreover_o we_o do_v read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o act_n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v put_v in_o the_o common_a prison_n at_o jerusalem_n but_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o night_n open_v the_o door_n of_o the_o prison_n and_o bring_v they_o forth_o the_o door_n of_o the_o prison_n be_v shut_v fast_o again_o as_o sure_a as_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o yet_o none_o of_o the_o keeper_n that_o be_v stand_v without_o before_o the_o door_n and_o keep_v they_o with_o all_o diligence_n do_v espy_v it_o when_o it_o be_v doen._n likewise_o in_o the_o same_o book_n we_o find_v write_v that_o when_o herode_fw-la will_v have_v bring_v forth_o peter_n for_o to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v come_v unto_o he_o as_o he_o sleep_v between_o two_o soldier_n bind_v with_o two_o chain_n and_o the_o keeper_n that_o watch_v and_o ward_v the_o prison_n side_n stand_v without_o before_o the_o door_n and_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o angel_n smite_v peter_n on_o the_o side_n and_o wake_v he_o his_o chain_n fall_v of_o from_o his_o hand_n and_o also_o that_o when_o he_o and_o the_o angel_n be_v paste_v the_o first_o and_o second_o watch_n and_o be_v come_v to_o
teach_v moses_n another_o lesson_n for_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o the_o fiery_a bush_n he_o do_v bid_v he_o to_o put_v of_o his_o shoe_n shoe_n because_o that_o he_o stand_v in_o a_o holy_a place_n whereby_o we_o be_v admonish_v of_o two_o thing_n first_o how_o that_o god_n do_v prefer_v our_o bare_a skin_n which_o he_o have_v sanctify_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n before_o the_o skin_n of_o dead_a beast_n which_o shall_v never_o rise_v again_o nor_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o glory_n that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n of_o all_o flesh_n both_o in_o their_o body_n and_o in_o their_o soul_n second_o how_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o put_v away_o all_o dead_a work_n from_o we_o if_o we_o will_v true_o and_o as_o we_o shall_v do_v handle_v holy_a thing_n or_o if_o we_o look_v for_o to_o obtain_v true_a holiness_n at_o god_n hand_n these_o godly_a lesson_n shall_v they_o teach_v the_o people_n when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o communion_n and_o as_o true_a and_o faithful_a pastor_n they_o shall_v endeavour_n themselves_o to_o deliver_v they_o from_o the_o abominable_a superstition_n of_o these_o false_a apostle_n which_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o precept_n of_o man_n 2._o be_v wont_v to_o say_v touche_n not_o eat_v not_o handle_v not_o ¶_o the_o xvij_o chapter_n ¶_o against_o worship_a of_o the_o sacrament_n now_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o detestable_a idolatry_n that_o they_o do_v with_o all_o tyranny_n and_o cruelty_n compel_v man_n to_o commit_v make_v they_o to_o worship_v a_o piece_n of_o bread_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o live_n god_n creator_n of_o all_o thing_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a for_o whereas_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v institute_v and_o ordain_v for_o to_o put_v we_o in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o death_n passion_n and_o bloodshedding_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n sacrament_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v in_o it_o be_v due_o minister_v and_o worthy_o receive_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o all_o the_o merit_v thereof_o that_o be_v to_o ●aie_n be_v put_v in_o full_a possession_n of_o all_o that_o he_o do_v purchase_v by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o body_n and_o by_o the_o shed_n of_o his_o blood_n they_o make_v of_o it_o a_o plain_a idol_n cause_v the_o simple_a ignorant_a people_n to_o geve_v godly_a honour_n to_o the_o corruptible_a element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o thing_n they_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o to_o be_v direct_o against_o all_o the_o scripture_n which_o do_v always_o teach_v we_o to_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n and_o mind_n unto_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v to_o say_v unto_o the_o thing_n that_o by_o the_o sacrament_n be_v signify_v unto_o we_o and_o not_o unto_o the_o visible_a element_n and_o sign_n of_o they_o for_o as_o saint_n chrisostome_n say_v the_o infidel_n 7._o when_o he_o hear_v of_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n think_v it_o to_o be_v only_o plain_a water_n but_o i_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o see_v water_n but_o also_o the_o cleanse_n of_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n i_o consider_v christes_fw-fr burial_n his_o resurrection_n our_o sanctification_n righteousness_n and_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o thing_n that_o i_o see_v i_o judge_v not_o with_o my_o bodily_a eye_n but_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o my_o mind_n thus_o far_o he_o saint_n augustine_n therefore_o plain_o say_v to_o they_o that_o hang_v so_o upon_o the_o visible_a sign_n ea_fw-la demum_fw-la est_fw-la miserabilis_fw-la animae_fw-la seruitus_fw-la signa_fw-la pro_fw-la rebus_fw-la accipere_fw-la this_o be_v a_o miserable_a bondage_n of_o the_o soul_n 5._o to_o take_v the_o sign_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v signify_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v they_o wont_a to_o say_v lift_v up_o your_o heart_n all_o the_o people_n or_o congregation_n answer_v 3_n we_o have_v lift_v they_o up_o unto_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v short_a christ_n our_o saviour_n who_o say_v that_o he_o have_v show_v and_o declare_v unto_o we_o 15._o all_o that_o he_o hear_v of_o his_o father_n make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o this_o worship_a but_o say_v only_o take_v 11._o eat_v etc_n etc_n the_o bless_a apostle_n s._n paul_n who_o do_v set_v forth_o at_o large_a the_o whole_a institution_n of_o his_o master_n christ_n say_v not_o let_v a_o man_n fall_v down_o on_o his_o knee_n and_o worship_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o let_v a_o man_n examine_v himself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v ourselves_o descend_v into_o his_o own_o conscience_n and_o try_v his_o own_o heart_n and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n if_o any_o such_o worship_a have_v ben_fw-mi requisite_a and_o necessary_a both_o christ_n our_o saviour_n himself_o and_o also_o his_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v leave_v it_o out_o unspoken_a of_o whereby_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o all_o that_o they_o do_v in_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o mystical_a bread_n and_o wine_n be_v a_o mere_a invention_n of_o they_o and_o a_o most_o detestable_a idolatry_n which_o ought_v in_o no_o wise_a to_o be_v suffer_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o by_o it_o the_o honour_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o the_o live_a god_n only_o the_o creator_n and_o maker_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o unto_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o dumb_a and_o insensible_a creature_n and_o corruptible_a element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o they_o be_v corruptible_a creature_n 10._o saint_n augustine_n say_v if_o we_o behold_v the_o visible_a creature_n as_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n wherein_o the_o sacrament_n be_v minister_v who_o see_v not_o that_o they_o be_v corruptible_a but_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v wrought_v thereby_o who_o see_v not_o 15._o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v corrupt_v saint_n origene_n say_v the_o meat_n that_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o by_o prayer_n according_a to_o the_o material_a part_n that_o be_v in_o it_o pass_v into_o the_o belly_n and_o so_o forth_o into_o the_o privy_a etc_n etc_n therefore_o let_v we_o follow_v s._n chrisostomes_n council_n where_o he_o say_v nolimus_fw-la creatorem_fw-la cum_fw-la creatura_fw-la confundere_fw-la 3._o ne_fw-la illud_fw-la audiamus_fw-la seruierunt_fw-la creature_n potius_fw-la quàm_fw-la creatori_fw-la let_v we_o not_o confound_v the_o creature_n and_o the_o creator_n both_o together_o lest_o it_o be_v say_v of_o we_o they_o have_v honour_v a_o creature_n more_o than_o their_o creator_n for_o say_v he_o in_o a_o neither_o place_n 33._o creature_n be_v to_o worship_n &_o the_o creator_n to_o be_v worship_v objection_n but_o here_o they_o will_v say_v that_o they_o worship_v not_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n sacrament_n but_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v there_o real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o to_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o faithful_a communicantes_fw-la be_v not_o these_o saint_n augustine_n word_n say_v they_o 98._o no_o man_n do_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n except_o he_o worship_v it_o first_o &_o not_o only_o we_o do_v not_o sin_n if_o we_o worship_v it_o but_o rather_o we_o do_v sin_n if_o we_o worship_v it_o not_o they_o can_v neither_o prove_v by_o this_o place_n of_o saint_n augustine_n that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n answer_n nor_o yet_o maintain_v their_o idolatrous_a worship_v of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o it_o for_o all_o faithful_a christian_n be_v command_v to_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n do_v worship_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o godhead_n sit_v in_o glory_n on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n before_o that_o they_o feed_v upon_o it_o by_o faith_n through_o the_o mighty_a operation_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o god_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o saint_n augustine_n it_o may_v easy_o appear_v by_o that_o that_o follow_v for_o by_o and_o by_o after_o he_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o stick_v long_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o to_o climb_v up_o high_o unto_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n and_o very_o their_o very_a word_n that_o they_o do_v use_v afore_o that_o they_o go_v about_o or_o even_o when_o they_o go_v about_o their_o holy_a mystery_n say_v unto_o the_o people_n lift_v up_o your_o heart_n corda_fw-la do_v utter_o condemn_v they_o for_o by_o they_o follow_v in_o this_o point_n the_o custom_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n they_o do_v exhort_v the_o people_n that_o they_o stick_v not_o unto_o the_o visible_a element_n and_o sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o that_o they_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n and_o mind_n
represent_v his_o body_n with_o bread_n which_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v to_o be_v a_o creature_n but_o christ_n do_v represent_v his_o body_n with_o bread_n 4._o ergo_fw-la the_o bread_n be_v not_o naught_o but_o a_o good_a creature_n of_o god_n to_o be_v use_v with_o thanks_n geve_v but_o how_o soever_o the_o matter_n go_v tertullian_n do_v plain_o affirm_v here_o that_o christ_n do_v represent_v his_o body_n with_o bread_n and_o unto_o he_o do_v s._n hierome_n agree_v 26._o say_v he_o take_v bread_n which_o comfort_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n that_o as_o melchisedech_n have_v do_v in_o the_o figure_n of_o he_o when_o he_o do_v bring_v forth_o bread_n and_o wine_n so_o he_o shall_v represent_v the_o verity_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o the_o thing_n that_o do_v represent_v and_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v represent_v be_v all_o one_o except_o it_o be_v the_o papist_n as_o doctor_n harding_n cope_n martial_n and_o shakestocke_n i_o will_v say_v shackelocke_n columela_n who_o go_v about_o by_o columellas_fw-la word_n to_o prove_v as_o winchester_n do_v such_o a_o thing_n but_o if_o the_o saying_n of_o that_o profane_a writer_n shall_v take_v place_n in_o this_o matter_n it_o shall_v follow_v that_o the_o bread_n shall_v but_o represent_v itself_o and_o none_o other_o thing_n as_o columella_n will_v have_v ut_fw-la villicus_fw-la semper_fw-la se_fw-la representet_fw-la that_o the_o bailiff_n of_o husbandry_n shall_v always_o represent_v himself_o which_o be_v no_o more_o in_o our_o english_a but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v always_o present_a we_o be_v not_o wont_v to_o say_v that_o a_o king_n do_v represent_v himself_o or_o his_o own_o person_n but_o of_o a_o lord_n or_o of_o a_o judge_n that_o sit_v in_o judgement_n we_o say_v common_o that_o the_o same_o lord_n or_o judge_n do_v represent_v the_o king_n person_n not_o as_o a_o player_n that_o do_v represent_v a_o emperor_n or_o a_o king_n in_o a_o stage_n or_o footplaie_v but_o because_o of_o the_o king_n authority_n and_o power_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o even_o so_o in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o say_v with_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o the_o bread_n do_v represent_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n sign_n not_o as_o a_o bare_a naked_a figure_n or_o sign_n which_o thing_n all_o the_o rabblement_n of_o popish_a papist_n do_v most_o slanderous_o lay_v to_o our_o charge_n but_o because_o that_o be_v due_o minister_v and_o worthy_o receive_v it_o bring_v with_o itself_o the_o nature_n property_n virtue_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 1._o as_o ambrose_n do_v testify_v with_o these_o word_n thou_o do_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n for_o a_o similitude_n but_o thou_o do_v obtain_v the_o virtue_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o true_a nature_n and_o because_o that_o thou_o do_v receive_v bread_n thou_o be_v in_o the_o same_o food_n make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a substance_n these_o be_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o we_o say_v with_o the_o old_a father_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n that_o the_o bread_n do_v represent_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n similitude_n but_o as_o it_o need_v not_o that_o a_o king_n be_v real_o or_o personal_o present_a for_o to_o have_v his_o authority_n or_o power_n to_o take_v place_n among_o his_o faithful_a and_o obedient_a subject_n so_o be_v it_o nothing_o necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v have_v the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o without_o it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v though_o it_o be_v sit_v still_o accord_v to_o the_o scripture_n 10._o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n we_o have_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o institution_n and_o the_o mighty_a work_n of_o his_o spirit_n there_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o very_a property_n virtue_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o natural_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n most_o effectuous_o minister_v unto_o we_o to_o the_o everlasting_a comfort_n and_o nourishment_n both_o of_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n the_o same_o ancient_a writer_n and_o father_n 4._o i_o mean_v tertullian_n in_o his_o four_o book_n against_o martion_n write_v after_o this_o manner_n christ_n take_v bread_n and_o distribute_v it_o do_v make_v it_o his_o body_n say_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la mei_fw-la this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n and_o unto_o he_o will_v i_o join_v saint_n augustine_n that_o all_o man_n may_v see_v what_o shameful_a liar_n doctor_n hard_v &_o other_o the_o papist_n be_v who_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o none_o of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n neither_o before_o nor_o sense_n do_v expound_v these_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o tertullian_n do_v expound_v they_o in_o that_o place_n psal_n the_o word_n of_o saint_n augustine_n be_v these_o adhibuit_fw-la ad_fw-la convivium_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la svi_fw-la figuram_fw-la discipulis_fw-la commendavit_fw-la &_o tradidit_fw-la and_o he_o do_v admit_v or_o receive_v he_o unto_o the_o banquet_n wherein_o he_o do_v commend_v and_o deliver_v unto_o his_o disciple_n the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v again_o 22._o so_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o soul_n as_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n and_o yet_o the_o apostle_n say_v not_o the_o rock_n do_v signify_v christ_n but_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n so_o may_v i_o expound_v that_o this_o precept_n or_o commandment_n 10._o be_v give_v in_fw-ge a_o sign_n non_fw-la dubitavit_fw-la dominus_fw-la dicere_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la cum_fw-la daret_fw-la signum_fw-la corporis_fw-la svi_fw-la for_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o doubt_n or_o stick_v to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o do_v geve_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n in_o their_o own_o distinction_n they_o have_v these_o word_n quod_fw-la dicitur_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la improprie_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la sunsus_fw-la voco_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la significat_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o english_a it_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n meaning_n the_o sacrament_n but_o improper_o as_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o may_v be_v thus_o it_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o do_v signify_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n these_o say_n need_v no_o exposition_n at_o all_o for_o they_o be_v so_o plain_a that_o the_o very_a child_n in_o the_o street_n be_v able_a to_o understand_v they_o and_o also_o to_o perceive_v and_o espy_v out_o the_o shameful_a lease_n of_o our_o disguise_a papist_n who_o care_v not_o what_o they_o say_v so_o that_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o say_v some_o what_o for_o to_o deceive_v the_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a people_n withal_o and_o for_o to_o maintain_v their_o great_a grandfather_n antechristes_n kingdom_n of_o proud_a rome_n 12._o for_o you_o must_v understand_v that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a mark_n that_o they_o shoot_v at_o all_o the_o pack_n of_o they_o that_o they_o may_v set_v up_o themselves_o as_o god_n and_o bring_v all_o man_n head_n under_o their_o girdle_n and_o no_o doctrine_n they_o think_v will_v serve_v better_o for_o that_o purpose_n than_o this_o gross_a and_o capharnaiticall_a doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n 4._o and_o of_o the_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o who_o will_v not_o stand_v in_o fear_n of_o they_o and_o reverence_v they_o as_o god_n that_o can_v with_o five_o word_n make_v christ_n both_o god_n and_o man_n of_o a_o piece_n of_o bread_n whensoever_o they_o listen_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v write_v in_o a_o book_n of_o they_o these_o word_n clericorum_fw-la oh_o how_o honourable_a how_o worshipful_a and_o excellent_a be_v the_o dignity_n of_o priest_n if_o they_o will_v live_v priest-like_a in_o who_o hand_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v incarnate_v or_o take_v flesh_n and_o then_o by_o and_o by_o after_o it_o follow_v iste_fw-la qui_fw-la creavit_fw-la i_o dedit_fw-la mihi_fw-la creare_fw-la se_fw-la qui_fw-la creavit_fw-la i_o sine_fw-la i_o creature_n mediaente_v i_o cum_fw-la ergo_fw-la tante_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la fit_a sacerdos_fw-la quod_fw-la creator_n fit_a svi_fw-la creatoris_fw-la &_o totius_fw-la creature_n â–ª_o ipsum_fw-la perdere_fw-la vel_fw-la damnare_fw-la inconueniens_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o english_a he_o that_o make_v i_o give_v i_o power_n to_o make_v he_o and_o he_o that_o make_v i_o without_o i_o be_v make_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o i_o see_v than_o that_o a_o priest_n be_v of_o so_o great_a dignity_n that_o he_o be_v the_o maker_n of_o his_o maker_n and_o of_o every_o creature_n to_o destroy_v or_o to_o condemn_v he_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a even_o the_o like_o you_o may_v read_v in_o another_o
book_n of_o they_o 12._o these_o word_n of_o proud_a herode_fw-la sacerdos_n est_fw-la altior_fw-la regibus_fw-la foelicior_fw-la angelis_fw-la &_o creator_n svi_fw-la creatoris_fw-la a_o priest_n be_v high_a in_o authority_n than_o king_n glory_n happy_a or_o more_o bless_a than_o angel_n and_o a_o creator_n of_o his_o creator_n to_o be_v short_a all_o man_n may_v see_v now_o at_o this_o present_a that_o all_o their_o study_n and_o seek_n be_v to_o advance_v their_o own_o pride_n and_o glory_n and_o to_o exalt_v themselves_o above_o all_o prince_n and_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o be_v a_o property_n of_o antichrist_n and_o of_o all_o the_o imp_n of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o leave_v the_o trial_n of_o this_o thing_n unto_o other_o man_n that_o have_v any_o eye_n to_o see_v i_o will_v return_v again_o to_o my_o matter_n our_o popecatholiques_n perceive_n these_o authority_n that_o i_o have_v now_o allege_v out_o of_o tertullian_n out_o of_o augustine_n and_o out_o of_o their_o own_o distinction_n to_o be_v so_o plain_a that_o any_o child_n be_v able_a to_o pick_v out_o the_o english_a of_o they_o do_v be_v stir_v themselves_o that_o at_o the_o least_o they_o may_v cast_v some_o mist_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o unlearned_a and_o simple_a people_n objection_n the_o sign_n say_v they_o and_o the_o figure_n be_v take_v for_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v represent_v and_o signify_v by_o they_o yea_o they_o be_v the_o very_a thing_n itself_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o angel_n who_o after_o that_o he_o have_v show_v unto_o the_o shéepheardes_n that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n be_v bear_v 2._o do_v say_v immediate_o and_o take_v this_o for_o a_o sign_n you_o shall_v find_v the_o child_n swaddle_v and_o lay_v in_o a_o manger_n be_v not_o christ_n there_o both_o the_o sign_n &_o the_o very_a thing_n itself_o that_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o sign_n again_o simeon_n speak_v of_o he_o say_v plain_o these_o word_n 2._o this_o child_n shall_v be_v a_o sign_n which_o shall_v be_v speak_v against_o here_o again_o do_v we_o see_v that_o the_o sign_n &_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o it_o be_v both_o one_o moreover_o the_o bless_a apostle_n do_v call_v christ_n the_o very_a image_n of_o his_o father_n substance_n ●_o and_o yet_o all_o man_n will_v confess_v that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n be_v one_o with_o the_o father_n in_o substance_n whereby_o it_o follow_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o image_n or_o figure_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o he_o be_v himself_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n ought_v the_o father_n to_o be_v understand_v when_o they_o call_v the_o sacrament_n a_o sign_n or_o a_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ._n this_o be_v the_o mist_n that_o our_o papistical_a doctor_n do_v daily_a endeavour_n themselves_o answer_n to_o cast_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a which_o through_o the_o help_n of_o he_o that_o be_v the_o true_a son_n of_o righteousness_n shall_v soon_o be_v drive_v away_o that_o all_o man_n that_o will_v may_v see_v the_o cheerful_a and_o comfortable_a light_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o for_o the_o first_o place_n that_o they_o have_v allege_v and_o do_v allege_v daily_o it_o make_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o they_o for_o the_o angel_n do_v not_o say_v nota._n and_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o sign_n of_o a_o child_n swaddle_v and_o lay_v up_o in_o a_o manger_n but_o the_o very_a word_n be_v these_o 2._o and_o for_o a_o sign_n you_o shall_v find_v the_o child_n swaddle_v &_o lay_v up_o in_o a_o manger_n whereby_o any_o man_n may_v perceive_v that_o christ_n be_v new_o bear_v be_v not_o appoint_v of_o the_o angel_n for_o to_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o himself_o for_o that_o need_v not_o but_o for_o to_o be_v a_o sign_n &_o token_n that_o the_o word_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v unto_o the_o shepherd_n be_v true_a no_o man_n will_v say_v i_o trow_v that_o christ_n &_o the_o word_n that_o the_o angel_n speak_v then_o unto_o the_o shepherd_n be_v alone_a thing_n let_v any_o man_n read_v the_o place_n well_o and_o mark_v diligent_o the_o circumstance_n of_o it_o and_o he_o shall_v find_v it_o to_o be_v as_o i_o say_v we_o have_v almost_o the_o like_a manner_n of_o speak_v in_o esaie_n 7._o where_o the_o prophet_n speak_v unto_o achas_n do_v say_v and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n shall_v geve_v you_o a_o token_n himself_o behold_v a_o virgin_n shall_v conceive_v and_o bear_v a_o son_n etc_n etc_n shall_v we_o say_v now_o that_o the_o virgin_n marie_n with_o her_o son_n be_v a_o token_n or_o sign_n of_o herself_o and_o not_o rather_o a_o token_n and_o sign_n that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n which_o he_o speak_v then_o unto_o achas_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v most_o true_a and_o that_o they_o shall_v in_o their_o time_n be_v fulfil_v and_o perform_v now_o whereas_o they_o do_v bring_v forth_o the_o saying_n of_o simeon_n true_o they_o declare_v therein_o their_o devilish_a and_o malicious_a heart_n and_o also_o their_o most_o wicked_a intent_n whereby_o they_o go_v about_o to_o pervert_v all_o the_o scripture_n that_o come_v into_o their_o hand_n for_o in_o that_o place_n this_o word_n sign_n be_v not_o take_v for_o a_o thing_n that_o do_v signify_v or_o represent_v another_o thing_n expound_v but_o for_o a_o mark_n that_o man_n be_v wont_v customable_o to_o shoot_v at_o for_o the_o meaning_n of_o simeon_n be_v that_o christ_n with_o his_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v as_o a_o mark_n that_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v shoot_v at_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o both_o he_o and_o his_o gospel_n shall_v be_v withstand_v and_o resist_v of_o all_o the_o unfaithful_a worldling_n upon_o the_o earth_n which_o will_v bend_v themselves_o against_o the_o lord_n and_o against_o his_o anoint_a 2._o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o glad_a or_o joyful_a tiding_n of_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n as_o bow_n he_o customable_o bend_v against_o a_o mark_n therefore_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v at_o rome_n 28._o do_v say_v unto_o paul_n we_o have_v hear_v of_o this_o sect_n that_o every_o where_o it_o be_v speak_v against_o these_o few_o word_n that_o the_o jew_n do_v speak_v unto_o paul_n aught_o to_o serve_v we_o for_o a_o sufficient_a exposition_n of_o simeons_n say_n for_o thereby_o we_o do_v learn_v that_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o old_a father_n be_v none_o other_o but_o that_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n shall_v be_v speak_v against_o do_v not_o now_o all_o man_n see_v how_o well_o to_o the_o purpose_n they_o do_v allege_v the_o scripture_n and_o that_o all_o that_o they_o seek_v be_v how_o they_o may_v deceive_v and_o blind_a man_n and_o keep_v they_o in_o error_n still_o 2._o that_o their_o pride_n pomp_n and_o glory_n may_v continue_v unto_o the_o world_n end_n but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o help_n they_o have_v by_o the_o place_n that_o they_o recite_v out_o of_o the_o hebrew_n therefore_o say_v they_o it_o be_v write_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o father_n substance_n what_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o plain_o all_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n will_v confess_v that_o christ_n be_v one_o in_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n 1._o do_v it_o not_o follow_v then_o that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o that_o thing_n that_o he_o be_v himself_o i_o beseech_v thou_o good_a reader_n take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v the_o whole_a place_n as_o it_o lie_v with_o the_o circumstance_n and_o all_o and_o then_o shall_v you_o soon_o perceive_v how_o much_o it_o help_v they_o in_o the_o maintain_v of_o their_o shameful_a error_n for_o there_o they_o shall_v learn_v that_o whereas_o god_n in_o time_n pass_v diverse_o and_o many_o way_n speak_v unto_o the_o father_n by_o the_o prophet_n 1._o he_o do_v in_o these_o last_o day_n speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n it_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o they_o that_o read_v the_o scripture_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o prophet_n 1._o and_o that_o by_o he_o god_n speak_v unto_o the_o father_n how_o shall_v we_o then_o understand_v this_o place_n to_o the_o hebrew_n where_o he_o say_v that_o god_n do_v in_o these_o last_o day_n speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n sith_o that_o he_o do_v before_o speak_v unto_o the_o father_n by_o he_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o mark_v that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n do_v speak_v unto_o the_o father_n by_o his_o son_n understand_v because_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o all_o the_o prophet_n by_o who_o he_o speak_v unto_o the_o father_n but_o in_o these_o latter_a day_n god_n do_v speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n be_v incarnate_v that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v make_v man_n
god_n promise_n now_o the_o master_n and_o teacher_n of_o truth_n the_o author_n of_o light_n the_o well_o and_o fountain_n of_o wisdom_n knowledge_n and_o understanding_n this_o be_v he_o that_o do_v purge_n and_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o filthiness_n 51._o and_o oversprinckle_v we_o with_o his_o sanctitude_n and_o holiness_n that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v the_o worthy_a temple_n of_o almighty_a god_n this_o be_v he_o that_o with_o his_o effectual_a water_a do_v make_v we_o fruitful_a unto_o righteousness_n 7._o for_o to_o bring_v forth_o abundant_o the_o fruit_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o our_o heavenly_a father_n may_v be_v glorify_v through_o our_o good_a work_n conversation_n and_o outward_a live_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n he_o be_v many_o time_n call_v water_n as_o in_o these_o place_n of_o the_o prophet_n all_o you_o that_o be_v a_o thirst_n come_v unto_o the_o water_n again_o i_o will_v pour_v water_n upon_o he_o that_o be_v a_o thirst_n 7._o and_o river_n upon_o the_o dry_a land_n whereunto_o the_o saying_n of_o christ_n do_v agree_v where_o he_o bid_v they_o that_o be_v a_o thirst_n to_o come_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o drink_v of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n although_o he_o be_v other_o while_o so_o call_v for_o the_o efficacy_n strength_n power_n and_o virtue_n that_o he_o have_v to_o pourge_v and_o make_v clean_a where_o the_o lord_n promise_v in_o ezechiell_n 1._o to_o wash_v his_o people_n with_o clean_a water_n the_o same_o be_v he_o that_o consume_v and_o burn_v away_o the_o inordinate_a lust_n &_o concupiscense_v of_o our_o flesh_n kyndel_v our_o heart_n with_o the_o divine_a love_n of_o god_o and_o of_o heavenly_a thing_n wherefore_o he_o be_v call_v by_o god_n right_a fire_n final_o this_o be_v he_o that_o by_o his_o inspiration_n do_v make_v we_o whole_o to_o live_v unto_o god_n 4._o so_o that_o we_o be_v no_o more_o lead_v by_o our_o own_o sensuality_n but_o follow_v only_o his_o motion_n and_o guide_v therefore_o be_v it_o say_v of_o barnarde_n very_o well_o 2._o quid_fw-la bone_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la operatur_fw-la monet_fw-la movet_fw-la &_o docet_fw-la monet_fw-la memoriam_fw-la movet_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la docet_fw-la rationem_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v what_o good_a do_v the_o spirit_n or_o holy_a ghost_n in_o we_o he_o do_v warn_v move_v and_o teach_v he_o do_v warn_v our_o remembrance_n he_o do_v move_v our_o will_n and_o teach_v our_o reason_n therefore_o if_o there_o be_v any_o goodness_n in_o we_o it_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o virtue_n but_o all_o our_o gift_n without_o he_o be_v mere_a darkness_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o wicked_a perverseness_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o as_o i_o do_v believe_v that_o all_o the_o gift_n and_o benefit_n that_o we_o do_v receive_v of_o god_n through_o his_o only_a beget_v son_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v by_o this_o holy_a spirit_n print_v grave_v and_o seal_v up_o in_o our_o heart_n and_o mind_n so_o do_v i_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v and_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o only_o by_o his_o divine_a inspiration_n 3._o and_o that_o the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o without_o all_o other_o be_v sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n as_o the_o bless_a apostle_n do_v testify_v say_v continue_v in_o the_o thing_n that_o thou_o have_v learn_v which_o also_o be_v commit_v unto_o thou_o sing_v thou_o know_v of_o who_o thou_o have_v learn_v they_o and_o for_o as_o much_o also_o as_o thou_o haste_v know_v the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o a_o child_n which_o be_v able_a to_o make_v thou_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n through_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesu_n for_o all_o scripture_n give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n be_v profitable_a to_o teach_v to_o improve_v to_o amend_v and_o to_o instruct_v in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_v and_o ready_a unto_o all_o good_a work_n whereunto_o chrisostome_n do_v agree_v say_v what_o soever_o be_v require_v unto_o salvation_n titum_fw-la all_o the_o same_o shall_v you_o find_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o have_v at_o his_o time_n say_v he_o reveal_v and_o open_v his_o word_n by_o the_o preach_n that_o be_v commit_v unto_o i_o and_o this_o be_v the_o preach_n the_o gospel_n do_v contain_v all_o thing_n both_o present_a and_o to_o come_v honour_n godliness_n 4._o faith_n to_o be_v short_a he_o have_v comprehend_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o word_n of_o his_o preach_n again_o he_o say_v what_o so_o ever_o be_v require_v for_o our_o salvation_n be_v already_o contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o that_o be_v ignorant_a shall_v find_v there_o what_o he_o may_v learn_v he_o that_o be_v stubborn_a and_o a_o sinner_n may_v find_v there_o scourge_v of_o the_o judgement_n to_o come_v he_o that_o be_v trouble_v may_v find_v there_o joy_n and_o promise_n of_o everlasting_a life_n through_o the_o behold_n of_o which_o he_o may_v be_v stir_v to_o good_a work_n saint_n augustine_n say_v here._n read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n wherein_o you_o shall_v find_v full_o what_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v and_o what_o to_o be_v avoid_v athanasius_n also_o say_v the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v he_o be_v inspire_v from_o god_n gentile_n be_v sufficient_a to_o all_o instruction_n of_o the_o truth_n lyra_n one_o of_o the_o pope_n own_o doctor_n have_v these_o word_n proverb_n like_a as_o in_o a_o merchauntes_n ship_n be_v carry_v diverse_a thing_n necessary_a for_o man_n life_n so_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v contain_v all_o thing_n needful_a to_o our_o salvation_n who_o so_o ever_o then_o do_v affirm_v and_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n and_o that_o beside_o it_o we_o have_v need_n of_o man_n tradition_n and_o doctrine_n as_o though_o without_o they_o we_o can_v not_o have_v in_o the_o sacred_a book_n of_o god_n a_o sufficient_a instruction_n in_o thing_n that_o pertain_v to_o life_n everlasting_a 1_n or_o who_o soever_o say_v &_o affirm_v that_o this_o holy_a spirit_n do_v teach_v and_o set_v for_o the_o any_o other_o word_n or_o doctrine_n then_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o sacred_a book_n of_o god_n i_o dare_v bold_o affirm_v that_o the_o same_o man_n be_v not_o lead_v with_o the_o same_o holy_a spirit_n who_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o giver_n of_o life_n and_o who_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n &_o the_o son_n 1●_o shall_v lead_v we_o into_o all_o truth_n and_o bring_v into_o our_o remembrance_n whatsoever_o christ_n our_o saviour_n the_o heavenly_a wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n have_v teach_v and_o set_v forth_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n but_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n i_o mean_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o sathan_n the_o devil_n who_o to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o his_o power_n cause_v man_n to_o contemn_v despise_v and_o set_v at_o naught_o the_o holy_a commandment_n of_o almighty_a god_n 15._o that_o they_o may_v set_v up_o their_o own_o tradition_n and_o dream_n and_o all_o under_o the_o title_n name_n and_o colour_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wherefore_o it_o be_v most_o needful_a and_o necessary_a that_o we_o have_v always_o before_o our_o eye_n the_o saying_n of_o the_o bless_a evangelist_n saint_n john_n spiritu_fw-la where_o he_o say_v dear_o belove_v believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n but_o prove_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o not_o also_o s._n chrisost._n say_v agree_v with_o the_o same_o many_o say_v he_o do_v boast_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o they_o that_o do_v utter_a and_o set_v out_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o dream_n do_v pretend_v he_o in_o vain_a for_o as_o christ_n do_v witness_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o himself_o but_o out_o of_o the_o law_n &_o the_o prophet_n si_fw-la quid_fw-la prae●er_fw-la euangelium_fw-la sub_fw-la titulo_fw-la spiritus_fw-la obtrudatur_fw-la ne_fw-la credamus_fw-la quia_fw-la sicut_fw-la christus_fw-la legis_fw-la &_o prophetarum_fw-la impletio_fw-la est_fw-la ita_fw-la est_fw-la spiritus_fw-la euangelij_fw-la if_o any_o thing_n be_v bring_v unto_o we_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v he_o beside_o the_o gospel_n let_v we_o not_o believe_v it_o for_o as_o christ_n be_v the_o fulfil_a of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n so_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o fulfil_a of_o the_o gospel_n for_o without_o that_o spirit_n 54._o we_o have_v neither_o ear_n to_o hear_v nor_o eye_n to_o see_v it_o be_v that_o spirit_n that_o open_v and_o no_o man_n shut_v the_o same_o shut_v and_o no_o man_n open_v the_o same_o spirit_n open_v the_o sick_a woman_n heart_n that_o she_o shall_v
the_o inner_a man_n that_o christ_n may_v dwell_v in_o your_o heart_n by_o faith_n again_o he_o say_v 4._o grieve_v not_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n by_o who_o you_o be_v seal_v unto_o redemption_n but_o that_o thing_n that_o he_o require_v there_o he_o desire_v god_n to_o grant_n it_o to_o the_o thessalonian_n say_v 1._o wherefore_o we_o pray_v always_o for_o you_o that_o our_o god_o make_v you_o worthy_a of_o your_o call_n and_o fulfil_v all_o good_a purpose_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n with_o power_n that_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v glorify_v in_o you_o and_o you_o in_o he_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n again_o ●_o i_o plant_v and_o apollo_n have_v water_v but_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n that_o give_v the_o increase_n for_o in_o the_o lord_n we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v 17._o as_o we_o may_v easy_o see_v in_o that_o christ_n do_v say_v unto_o the_o man_n that_o be_v sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n 9_o arise_v take_v up_o thy_o bed_n and_o go_v home_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o have_v strength_n to_o arise_v except_o christ_n our_o saviour_n have_v give_v it_o he_o but_o when_o christ_n do_v say_v unto_o he_o arise_v he_o do_v straight_o with_o it_o give_v he_o strength_n to_o arise_v even_o so_o when_o god_n do_v by_o his_o preacher_n speak_v unto_o they_o who_o he_o have_v choose_v already_o and_o do_v bid_v and_o exhort_v they_o to_o arise_v out_o of_o the_o bed_n of_o sin_n straight_o therewith_o he_o give_v they_o strength_n to_o do_v it_o saint_n augustine_n agree_v herewith_o 89._o say_v jubet_fw-la ergo_fw-la deus_fw-la continentiam_fw-la &_o da●continentiam_fw-la jubet_fw-la per_fw-la legem_fw-la that_fw-mi per_fw-la gratiam_fw-la jubet_fw-la per_fw-la literam_fw-la that_fw-mi per_fw-la spiritum_fw-la god_n do_v command_v continency_n and_o he_o do_v give_v continency_n he_o command_v it_o by_o the_o law_n he_o do_v give_v it_o by_o grace_n he_o command_v it_o by_o the_o letter_n he_o do_v give_v it_o by_o the_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v most_o excellent_o in_o his_o book_n of_o confession_n 19_o continentiam_fw-la iubes_fw-la da_fw-la quod_fw-la iubes_fw-la &_o iube_fw-la quod_fw-la vis_fw-la thou_o command_v continency_n give_v that_o thou_o command_v and_o command_v what_o thou_o will_v again_o lex_fw-la data_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la gratia_fw-la quaereretur_fw-la gratia_fw-la data_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la lex_fw-la impleretur_fw-la the_o law_n be_v give_v that_o grace_n shall_v be_v seek_v grace_n be_v give_v that_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v again_o quod_fw-la bene_fw-la vi●imus_fw-la quod_fw-la raecte_fw-la intelligimus_fw-la deo_fw-la debemus_fw-la 10._o nostrum_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la p●ccatum_fw-la quod_fw-la habemus_fw-la that_o we_o live_v well_o that_o we_o understand_v a_o right_n we_o have_v it_o of_o god_n of_o ourselves_o we_o have_v nothing_o but_o only_a sin_n that_o be_v within_o us._n mihi_fw-la again_o saint_n hierome_n say_v non_fw-la dixit_fw-la dedi_fw-la ●is_fw-la liberi_fw-la arbitrij_fw-la potestatem_fw-la ut_fw-la ipsi_fw-la se_fw-la svo_fw-la labour_v saluarent_fw-la sed_fw-la ego_fw-la custodivi_fw-la eos_fw-la ego_fw-la seruavi_fw-la christ_n say_v not_o i_o have_v give_v to_o they_o the_o power_n of_o free_a will_n that_o they_o by_o their_o own_o labour_n shall_v be_v save_v but_o i_o have_v keep_v they_o i_o have_v reserve_v they_o these_o testimony_n both_o of_o scripture_n and_o father_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v that_o whatsoever_o god_n do_v requre_a of_o we_o the_o same_o he_o must_v work_v in_o we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n for_o of_o ourselves_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v no_o manner_n of_o thing_n that_o good_a be_v therefore_o say_v saint_n augustine_n 98._o homo_fw-la sibi_fw-la sufficit_fw-la ad_fw-la peccandum_fw-la ut_fw-la iustificetur_fw-la non_fw-la sibi_fw-la sufficit_fw-la nisi_fw-la ab_fw-la illo_fw-la iustificetur_fw-la qui_fw-la solus_fw-la est_fw-la iustus_fw-la man_n be_v able_a or_o sufficient_a of_o himself_o to_o sin_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v justify_v he_o be_v not_o able_a or_o sufficient_a of_o himself_o except_o he_o shall_v be_v justify_v by_o he_o which_o only_o be_v just_a again_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o say_v psal_n i_o doneus_fw-la est_fw-la homo_fw-la ad_fw-la vulnerandum_fw-la sed_fw-la nunquam_fw-la idoneus_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la sanandum_fw-la se_fw-la quando_fw-la vult_fw-la egrotat_fw-la non_fw-la quando_fw-la vult_fw-la surgit_fw-la man_n be_v apt_a and_o meet_a to_o wound_n himself_o but_o he_o be_v not_o apt_a and_o meet_a to_o heal_v himself_o when_o he_o will_v he_o be_v sick_a not_o when_o he_o will_v he_o do_v rise_v 6._o and_o where_o as_o they_o say_v god_n will_v save_v none_o against_o his_o will_n it_o be_v true_a in_o deed_n for_o they_o be_v make_v willing_a by_o he_o before_o who_o he_o will_v and_o do_v save_v and_o who_o he_o make_v willing_a they_o do_v he_o also_o help_v aid_n and_o assist_v that_o they_o may_v do_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v make_v they_o willing_a to_o do_v wherefore_o christ_n say_v no_o man_n come_v unto_o i_o except_o my_o father_n do_v draw_v he_o and_o again_o it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o we_o both_o the_o will_n 2._o and_o also_o the_o deed_n according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n lau._n saint_n augustine_n say_v agree_v herewith_o no_o man_n say_v he_o can_v believe_v hope_v or_o love_n unless_o he_o will_v but_o even_o the_o self_n same_o will_n to_o believe_v hope_v and_o love_n come_v not_o but_o from_o god_n again_o 13._o nos_fw-la volumus_fw-la sed_fw-la deus_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la operatur_fw-la velle_fw-la nos_fw-la operamur_fw-la sed_fw-la deus_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la operatur_fw-la &_o operari_fw-la pro_fw-la bona_fw-la sva_fw-la voluntate_fw-la hoc_fw-la nobis_fw-la expedit_fw-la &_o credere_fw-la &_o dicere_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la pium_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la verum_fw-la ut_fw-la fit_a humilis_fw-la 6._o &_o submissa_fw-la confessio_fw-la &_o detur_fw-la totum_fw-la deo_fw-la tutiores_fw-la vivimus_fw-la si_fw-la totum_fw-la deo_fw-la damus_fw-la non_fw-la aunt_n nos_fw-la illi_fw-la ex_fw-la parte_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la ex_fw-la parte_fw-la committimus_fw-la we_o will_v but_o it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o we_o to_o will._n we_o work_n ▪_o but_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o we_o to_o work_v accord_v to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n this_o be_v behooveful_a for_o we_o both_o to_o believe_v &_o to_o speak_v this_o be_v a_o godly_a this_o be_v a_o true_a doctrine_n that_o our_o confession_n may_v be_v humble_a and_o lowly_a and_o that_o god_n may_v have_v the_o whole_a we_o live_v in_o more_o safety_n if_o we_o give_v all_o unto_o god_n rather_o than_o if_o we_o commit_v ourselves_o partly_o to_o ourselves_o and_o partly_o to_o he_o 9_o saint_n gregory_n say_v ipse_fw-la aspirando_fw-la nos_fw-la prevenit_fw-la ut_fw-la velimus_fw-la qui_fw-la adiwando_fw-la subsequitur_fw-la ne_fw-la inaniter_fw-la velimus_fw-la he_o do_v prevent_v we_o with_o his_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v be_v willing_a and_o with_o his_o healp_a hand_n he_o do_v follow_v we_o least_o we_o shall_v will_v in_o vain_a saint_n barnarde_n say_v neque_fw-la enim_fw-la aut_fw-la inchoare_fw-la bonum_fw-la donec_fw-la à_fw-la misericordia_fw-la preveniamur_fw-la 39_o aut_fw-la agere_fw-la bonum_fw-la donec_fw-la adiunemur_fw-la à_fw-la gratia_fw-la aut_fw-la consummare_fw-la in_fw-la bono_fw-mi possumus_fw-la donec_fw-la gloria_fw-la repleamur_fw-la neither_o can_v we_o begin_v say_v he_o any_o good_a until_o we_o be_v prevent_v by_o mercy_n or_o else_o to_o do_v any_o good_a until_o we_o be_v help_v by_o grace_n or_o else_o that_o we_o can_v end_v in_o goodness_n until_o we_o be_v fulfil_v or_o replenish_v by_o glory_n therefore_o do_v saint_n augustine_n call_v it_o gratia_n praeveniens_fw-la prevent_v grace_n thus_o we_o may_v see_v that_o god_n save_v no_o man_n that_o be_v unwilling_a to_o be_v save_v or_o that_o do_v withstand_v and_o resist_v always_o his_o bless_a will_n and_o pleasure_n but_o before_o thae_fw-la he_o save_v any_o man_n he_o make_v that_o same_o man_n by_o his_o grace_n to_o consent_v and_o agree_v unto_o his_o bless_a will_n and_o pleasure_n yea_o he_o do_v reach_v forth_o his_o hand_n unto_o he_o for_o to_o pluck_v he_o up_o wherefore_o say_v fulgentius_n you_o see_v of_o who_o we_o have_v this_o good_a will_n fulgentius_n that_o we_o must_v bring_v unto_o god_n even_o of_o himself_o and_o not_o of_o we_o for_o it_o be_v he_o and_o none_o other_o that_o do_v work_v it_o in_o we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n every_o good_a work_n then_o which_o we_o do_v work_v in_o god_n the_o same_o do_v god_n work_v in_o we_o for_o all_o thing_n be_v of_o he_o through_o he_o and_o in_o he_o both_o our_o good_a work_n and_o our_o good_a will_n then_o be_v both_o of_o he_o hec_fw-la fulgentius_n note_v here_o that_o we_o say_v not_o that_o man_n be_v bereave_v of_o his_o understanding_n caveat_n
neither_o fol._n 125._o the_o imperfection_n of_o our_o own_o work_n fol._n 130.2_o three_o manner_n of_o power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n fol._n 132._o two_o thing_n to_o be_v learn_v in_o s._n paul_n say_n ro._n 8._o fol._n 137._o the_o law_n have_v more_o end_n than_o one_o fol._n 137.2_o two_o thing_n to_o be_v note_v fol._n 140.2_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v in_o we_o our_o regeneration_n fol._n 24._o five_o unto_o who_o hell_n be_v overcome_v fol._n 6.2_o vain_a opinion_n of_o sundry_a man_n fol._n 29._o vsia_n fol._n 73.2_o w_n wherefore_o christ_n be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v before_o pilate_n fol._n 1.2_o what_o the_o serpent_n signify_v ibidem_fw-la why_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n be_v offer_v often_o fol._n 2.2_o why_o christ_n be_v lay_v in_o a_o new_a grave_n fol._n 4.2_o why_o christ_n be_v lay_v in_o a_o neither_o man_n grave_n ibidem_fw-la what_o the_o new_a grave_n signify_v fol._n 7._o what_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o grave_n that_o be_v he_o when_o out_o of_o the_o stone_n ibidem_fw-la what_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v when_o we_o sai●_n ▪_o christ_n barowed_a hell_n fol._n ●●2●_n whereto_o god_n have_v respect_n in_o his_o son_n our_o saviour_n fol._n 5.2_o what_o thing_n cause_v christ_n to_o be_v so_o heavy_a before_o his_o death_n fol._n 8._o what_o abraham_n bosom_n be_v fol._n 9.2_o what_o we_o learn_v by_o the_o three_o of_o john_n fol._n 23.2_o wherein_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n do_v differ_v from_o the_o fire_n of_o hell_n 12.2_o we_o be_v all_o save_v by_o privilege_n fol._n ●3_o what_o be_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o our_o election_n fol._n 18._o what_o fruit_n their_o doctrine_n do_v bring_v that_o condemn_v child_n that_o die_v without_o baptism_n fol._n 19_o without_o faith_n no_o man_n can_v be_v deliver_v from_o condemnation_n fol._n 20._o what_o danger_n it_o be_v to_o refuse_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n f._n 20._o what_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v if_o we_o shall_v follow_v the_o father_n in_o all_o thing_n fol._n 22._o why_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v call_v fire_n fol._n 24._o why_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v call_v water_n fol._n 24.2_o what_o certain_a of_o the_o learned_a call_v augustine_n for_o his_o rigour_n towards_o infant_n not_o baptise_a fol._n 26.2_o what_o move_v augustine_n to_o write_v as_o he_o do_v of_o child_n not_o baptise_a fol._n 27._o wherein_o the_o anabaptist_n exceed_v fol._n 27._o whereof_o confirmation_n do_v come_v fol._n 27.2_o why_o the_o father_n do_v magnify_v the_o sacrament_n so_o much_o fol._n 29._o what_o profit_n come_v to_o they_o that_o be_v persuade_v in_o this_o doctrine_n fol._n 30.2_o what_o many_o foolish_a people_n use_v to_o do_v in_o carry_v their_o child_n to_o idol_n fol._n 31._o we_o do_v part_n our_o salvation_n between_o christ_n death_n and_o his_o resurrection_n fol._n 31.2_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v dead_a unto_o sin_n fol._n 32.2_o what_o a_o large_a doctrine_n our_o baptism_n do_v preach_v unto_o us._n fol._n 34._o what_o it_o be_v to_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n fol._n 35.2_o what_o the_o papist_n must_v do_v if_o they_o will_v have_v we_o to_o believe_v they_o 47.2_o what_o it_o be_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n unworthe_o fol._n 48._o why_o the_o papist_n can_v not_o perceive_v in_o what_o apparel_n they_o be_v fol._n 49._o wherein_o the_o papist_n have_v the_o father_n in_o estimation_n fol._n 53._o wherein_o we_o must_v bear_v with_o our_o weak_a brethren_n fol._n 53._o why_o the_o sacrament_n be_v ordain_v fol._n 16.2_o we_o do_v make_v more_o than_o bare_a sign_n of_o the_o sacrament_n fol._n 58.2_o what_o honour_n we_o ought_v to_o do_v to_o the_o sacrament_n ibid._n what_o we_o learn_v of_o the_o lord_n word_n in_o zacharie_n fol._n 60._o why_o christ_n will_v be_v baptize_v fol._n 63.2_o who_o can_v choose_v but_o laugh_v at_o the_o papist_n fol._n 68_o why_o the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v sacrament_n fol._n 69._o what_o this_o word_n signum_fw-la do_v signify_v in_o the_o .2_o of_o luk._n f._n 72.2_o what_o it_o be_v to_o examine_v ourselves_o fol._n 57_o and_o 76.2_o who_o they_o be_v that_o feed_v effectuous_o upon_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n fol._n 76.2_o why_o christ_n our_o saviour_n be_v man._n fol._n 81.2_o what_o be_v the_o chief_a mark_n that_o the_o papist_n shoot_v at_o fol._n 89._o why_o the_o apostle_n be_v call_v light_n fol._n 87_o 2_o what_o property_n must_v be_v in_o he_o that_o we_o must_v pray_v unto_o fol._n 89.2_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n foe_fw-mi 96._o what_o be_v signify_v by_o psalm_n hymn_n and_o song_n fol._n 104._o what_o the_o sun_n do_v signify_v fol._n 104.2_o what_o the_o moon_n do_v signifi●_n fol._n 105._o what_o the_o star_n do_v signify_v ibidem_fw-la we_o must_v believe_v in_o god_n power_n god_n providence_n god_n goodness_n fol._n 111._o what_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v fol._n 111.2_o who_o can_v be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n fol._n 112._o who_o be_v the_o keeper_n of_o the_o key_n of_o god_n kyngd_v foe_fw-mi 114.2_o what_o it_o be_v to_o loose_v ibidem_fw-la what_o it_o be_v to_o bind_v fol._n 115._o whereof_o the_o certitude_n of_o god_n word_n do_v depend_v fol._n 118.2_o when_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v fol._n 122.2_o when_o the_o church_n can_v and_o do_v err_v ibidem_fw-la whole_o universal_a church_n do_v never_o fall_v away_o from_o god._n ibidem_fw-la why_o it_o be_v call_v the_o invisible_a church_n fol._n 122._o we_o must_v not_o divide_v our_o self_n from_o the_o church_n because_o the_o wicked_a be_v among_o us._n fol._n 123._o whence_o this_o word_n iustificare_fw-la have_v be_v borrow_v and_o what_o it_o signify_v fol._n 124._o why_o god_n do_v crown_v his_o gift_n in_o us._n fol._n 129.2_o what_o the_o nature_n of_o merit_n be_v fol._n 130.2_o what_o we_o be_v as_o long_o as_o we_o be_v without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n fol._n 135._o what_o this_o word_n apochripha_n be_v fol._n 135.2_o what_o this_o word_n canon_n be_v ibi_fw-la why_o the_o faithful_a be_v say_v to_o be_v free_a fol._n 141._o what_o thing_n cause_v christ_n to_o be_v so_o heavy_a before_o his_o death_n fol._n 8._o what_o christ_n go_v down_o to_o hell_n be_v fol._n 9_o without_o faith_n no_o man_n can_v be_v deliver_v from_o condemnation_n fol._n 20._o whereto_o the_o papist_n have_v bring_v the_o order_n of_o confirmation_n fol._n 28.2_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v crucify_v to_o the_o world_n fol._n 32._o wherefore_o the_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v fol._n 56.2_o what_o great_a absurdity_n do_v come_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n fol._n 67.2_o what_o christ_n mean_v by_o the_o key_n fol._n 114._o finis_fw-la
leap_n dice_n card_n swear_v fight_n run_v abroad_o in_o the_o night_n break_v up_o door_n and_o window_n and_o burn_v man_n house_n one_o of_o his_o cardinal_n he_o geld_v he_o put_v out_o another_o eye_n which_o be_v his_o godfather_n he_o cut_v of_o one_o hand_n of_o a_o neither_o a_o tongue_n of_o other_o a_o finger_n a_o nose_n &_o a_o ear_n in_o his_o die_n play_v he_o will_v call_v upon_o evil_a spirit_n and_o drink_v to_o the_o devil_n be_v thus_o pope_n and_o a_o unholy_a father_n nine_o year_n &_o three_o month_n and_o five_o day_n be_v strike_v of_o the_o devil_n as_o they_o say_v as_o he_o be_v a_o bed_n with_o a_o neither_o man_n wife_n and_o so_o die_v within_o eight_o day_n after_o most_o miserable_o sergiu●_n so_o of_o this_o father_n godly_a life_n come_v that_o proverb_n up_o as_o merry_a as_o pope_n john_n what_o be_v pope_n sergius_n ▪_o not_o a_o man_n without_o all_o virtue_n and_o learning_n keep_v not_o he_o a_o whore_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o popedom_n call_v morozia_n and_o have_v by_o she_o a_o bastard_n which_o be_v pope_n long_o after_o he_o call_v pope_n john_n the_o .11_o this_o filthy_a tyrant_n do_v many_o villainous_a act_n what_o be_v pope_n marcellinus_n hyldebrand_n not_o a_o great_a idolater_n what_o be_v sylvester_n the_o .2_o not_o a_o great_a conjurer_n and_o give_v himself_o body_n and_o soul_n to_o the_o devil_n and_o by_o the_o devil_n procurement_n be_v make_v pope_n be_v not_o pope_n liberius_n a_o arrian_n heretic_n be_v not_o pope_n leo_n likewise_o a_o arrian_n pope_n caelestinus_n be_v he_o not_o a_o nestorian_a heretic_n be_v not_o pope_n honorius_n a_o monothelite_n heretic_n pope_n john_n the_o .22_o be_v not_o he_o reprove_v as_o a_o heretic_n at_o paris_n concern_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n i_o pray_v you_o what_o be_v pope_n hyldebrande_n be_v he_o not_o a_o adulterer_n a_o church_n robber_n a_o perjured_a man_n a_o murderer_n who_o poison_v six_o other_o pope_n his_o predecessor_n to_o make_v himself_o room_n to_o the_o holy_a seat_n be_v he_o not_o a_o great_a sorcerer_n and_o a_o reneger_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v not_o pope_n vrbanus_n a_o tyrannous_a murderer_n that_o take_v five_o of_o his_o cardinal_n alive_a vrbanus_n and_o put_v they_o into_o sack_n and_o throw_v they_o into_o the_o sea_n i_o can_v speak_v of_o pope_n stephen_n of_o his_o handle_n of_o formosus_fw-la stephen_n his_o predecessor_n in_o cut_v of_o his_o finger_n and_o head_n and_o throw_v his_o carcase_n into_o tiber_n and_o of_o many_o other_o of_o they_o but_o that_o i_o shall_v occupy_v and_o consume_v much_o ink_n and_o paper_n about_o a_o sort_n of_o filthy_a liver_n therefore_o pope_n adrian_n the_o .4_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v succedimus_fw-la non_fw-la petro_n in_fw-la pascendo_fw-la sed_fw-la romulo_n in_o parricidio_fw-la what_o shall_v i_o speak_v of_o their_o holy_a cardinal_n be_v they_o not_o ruffian_n toss_v pot_n whore_n master_n and_o bugger_n with_o young_a boy_n like_v unto_o the_o sodomite_n all_o the_o world_n know_v it_o what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o other_o their_o priest_n how_o shameful_o they_o live_v in_o their_o holy_a order_n be_v not_o a_o number_n of_o they_o thief_n perjurer_n murderer_n bugger_n with_o boy_n mare_n and_o sow_v pig_n some_o of_o they_o have_v be_v arain_v at_o the_o bar_n for_o it_o in_o excester_n and_o else_o where_o as_o the_o record_n can_v testify_v &_o some_o of_o they_o be_v no_o small_a chicken_n in_o the_o pope_n coube_v what_o say_v you_o to_o those_o holy_a father_n at_o the_o last_o council_n of_o trydent_n which_o be_v solemn_o gather_v together_o as_o they_o say_v to_o reform_v matter_n of_o religion_n and_o suppress_v of_o vice_n be_v not_o two_o of_o those_o holy_a father_n take_v at_o that_o time_n in_o whoredom_n the_o one_o be_v strike_v down_o with_o a_o club_n the_o other_o take_v with_o the_o manner_n by_o the_o husband_n and_o hang_v by_o the_o neck_n out_o of_o a_o great_a lucan_n window_n in_o the_o street_n what_o shall_v i_o say_v not_o long_o ago_o of_o one_o in_o winchester_n a_o great_a d._n of_o the_o papist_n who_o will_v drink_v nothing_o but_o water_n thrice_o a_o week_n who_o under_o the_o colour_n of_o virginity_n of_o wear_v a_o shirt_n of_o here_o and_o hang_v his_o shroud_n at_o his_o bed_n foot_n and_o mortify_v his_o body_n with_o straightness_n of_o life_n keep_v three_o whore_n at_o once_o in_o his_o chamber_n to_o serve_v he_o and_o his_o fellow_n at_o need_n which_o whore_n be_v fetch_v out_o by_o certain_a justice_n of_o peace_n this_o be_v as_o true_a as_o man_n use_v to_o eat_v meat_n upon_o a_o board_n board_n to_o conclude_v and_o leave_v trouble_v of_o your_o lordeship_n chaste_a and_o godly_a ear_n we_o will_v say_v of_o their_o whole_a clergy_n as_o some_o of_o their_o own_o doctor_n have_v write_v venalitate_fw-la curiae_fw-la roman_a inanitèr_fw-la praeficiuntur_fw-la lenones_fw-la antilogia_fw-la coqui_fw-la stabularij_fw-la equorum_fw-la &_o pveri_fw-la through_o the_o bribery_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n bawd_n cook_n ostler_n horsekeeper_n and_o child_n be_v place_v in_o office_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n thus_o i_o have_v rather_o give_v a_o inkel_n hereof_o then_o open_v the_o particular_a secret_n of_o the_o matter_n for_o as_o saint_n barnarde_n say_v 5._o qu●_n in_o ocular_a fiunt_fw-la ab_fw-la episcopis_fw-la turpe_fw-la est_fw-la vel_fw-la dicere_fw-la the_o three_o cause_n be_v for_o that_o of_o late_a one_o john_n blackeal_n bear_v in_o excester_n do_v open_a penance_n at_o paul_n cross_n and_o then_o and_o there_o before_o all_o the_o congregation_n open_o for_o that_o i_o detect_v his_o horrible_a vice_n and_o manifest_v they_o to_o certain_a of_o my_o friend_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v be_v better_o reclaim_v from_o his_o lewd_a and_o wanton_a life_n and_o so_o to_o satisfy_v the_o whole_a congregation_n with_o open_a repentance_n crave_v their_o prayer_n unto_o god_n for_o he_o cry_v and_o breathe_a out_o against_o i_o many_o foul_a and_o slanderous_a report_n to_o the_o great_a grief_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o joy_n of_o the_o wicked_a papist_n but_o hereby_o easy_o appear_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o wicked_a &_o malicious_a for_o when_o any_o conversion_n be_v make_v through_o god_n spirit_n by_o any_o sinner_n 9.11_o they_o will_v envy_v and_o use_v rail_a word_n against_o that_o convert_n as_o the_o wicked_a scribe_n and_o pharisees_n do_v and_o will_v speak_v evil_a of_o they_o because_o say_v peter_n they_o run_v not_o with_o they_o unto_o the_o same_o excess_n of_o riot_n 4.4_o therefore_o speak_v they_o evil_a of_o you_o if_o i_o have_v be_v altogether_o as_o wicked_a as_o he_o declare_v open_o yet_o he_o and_o all_o other_o envious_a man_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v sorrow_v 15.10_o but_o joy_v not_o to_o have_v envy_v ▪_o but_o love_a god_n good_a work_n in_o i_o with_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n this_o wicked_a man_n will_v not_o light_v a_o candle_n to_o seek_v a_o sinner_n but_o rather_o will_v bring_v a_o fire_n brand_v to_o consume_v his_o brother_n with_o his_o flame_a word_n but_o as_o david_n say_v who●_n burn_v coal_n shall_v consume_v that_o same_o tongue_n 114.10.11_o that_o will_v be_v the_o portion_n for_o ever_o for_o all_o such_o liar_n and_o slanderer_n a_o slanderer_n be_v worse_a than_o a_o raven_n who_o eat_v man_n be_v dead_a but_o a_o wicked_a slanderer_n eat_v man_n be_v a_o live_a but_o let_v we_o examine_v reverend_a father_n how_o this_o lewd_a man_n follow_v the_o counsel_n of_o solomon_n 8.5_o that_o say_v despise_v not_o a_o man_n that_o turn_v himself_o away_o from_o sin_n nor_o cast_v he_o not_o in_o the_o tooth_n with_o all_o but_o remember_v that_o we_o be_v all_o worthy_a blame_n 6.1_o the_o like_a doctrine_n paul_n teach_v brethren_n if_o a_o man_n be_v fall_v by_o occasion_n into_o any_o fault_n you_o which_o be_v spiritual_a restore_v such_o one_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n consider_v thyself_o 18.21_o lest_o thou_o be_v tempt_v also_o the_o lord_n say_v by_o his_o prophet_n that_o he_o will_v not_o remember_v nor_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o former_a life_n of_o a_o sinner_n after_o his_o conversion_n but_o this_o envious_a and_o slanderous_a man_n will_v have_v in_o remembrance_n thing_n past_a and_o make_v mention_n of_o that_o be_v never_o do_v speak_v no●_n say_v to_o the_o great_a infamy_n of_o the_o gospel_n because_o i_o be_o call_v although_o unworthy_a to_o be_v a_o preacher_n thereof_o upon_o which_o report_n and_o manifest_a slander_n speak_v the_o queen_n majesty_n commissioner_n immediate_o send_v for_o i_o to_o come_v before_o they_o and_o upon_o my_o appearance_n he_o then_o be_v in_o the_o marshal_n see_v a_o prisoner_n find_v such_o subtle_a and_o crafty_a mean_n
thou_o also_o say_v he_o have_v through_o the_o blood_n of_o thy_o testament_n let_v the_o prisoner_n out_o of_o the_o pit_n where_o no_o water_n be_v what_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o this_o lake_n or_o pit_n man_n may_v judge_v many_o way_n and_o that_o after_o the_o right_a faith_n but_o i_o think_v that_o nothing_o can_v better_v be_v understand_v by_o it_o than_o the_o dry_a and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o barren_a profundity_n of_o the_o deepness_n of_o man_n misery_n where_o the_o stream_n of_o righteousness_n be_v not_o but_o the_o mud_n of_o iniquity_n and_o of_o this_o pit_n it_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o psalm_n 59.2_o and_o he_o have_v say_v he_o bring_v i_o ▪_o out_o of_o the_o pit_n of_o misery_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mire_n and_o clay_n hitherto_o augustine_n thus_o you_o may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o this_o saying_n of_o the_o prophet_n nothing_o appertain_v unto_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v already_o deliver_v from_o those_o misery_n that_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o waterless_a pit_n but_o unto_o the_o live_n for_o he_o say_v direct_o after_o turn_v you_o to_o the_o strong_a hold_n you_o prisoner_n of_o hope_n which_o word_n can_v not_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o dead_a 9.12_o but_o to_o the_o live_n only_o for_o the_o prophet_n bid_v they_o turn_v into_o the_o holy_a land_n where_o the_o city_n and_o temple_n be_v where_o god_n will_v defend_v they_o saint_n hierome_n therefore_o say_v to_o all_o they_o that_o do_v hang_v upon_o bare_a word_n of_o the_o scripture_n nec_fw-la putemus_fw-la in_o verbis_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la esse_fw-la euangelium_fw-la 1._o sed_fw-la in_o sensu_fw-la non_fw-la in_o superficie_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o medulla_n non_fw-la in_o sermonum_fw-la folijs_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o radice_fw-la rationis_fw-la that_o be_v neither_o let_v we_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n consist_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o in_o the_o meaning_n not_o in_o the_o bark_n but_o in_o the_o pith_n not_o in_o the_o leaf_n of_o word_n but_o in_o the_o root_n of_o the_o meaning_n 1.20_o peter_n confirm_v this_o say_v so_o that_o you_o first_o know_v this_o that_o no_o prophecy_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o any_o private_a interpretation_n thus_o much_o as_o concern_v the_o place_n of_o the_o prophet_n zacharie_n as_o for_o the_o place_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n what_o be_v say_v above_o 2.30_o upon_o the_o psalm_n may_v suffice_v for_o that_o that_o be_v speak_v by_o david_n in_o the_o psalm_n be_v prophetical_o speak_v of_o christ_n not_o that_o his_o soul_n shall_v go_v and_o preach_v or_o bring_v out_o any_o soul_n from_o hell_n that_o be_v nothing_o the_o prophet_n meaning_n but_o he_o prophesy_v there_o only_o of_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n 2.30_o for_o so_o do_v saint_n peter_n open_a and_o expound_v it_o say_v therefore_o sing_v he_o be_v a_o prophet_n and_o know_v that_o god_n have_v swear_v with_o a_o oath_n to_o he_o that_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o loin_n he_o will_v raise_v up_o christ_n concern_v the_o flesh_n to_o set_v he_o upon_o his_o throne_n 31_o he_o know_v this_o before_o speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n that_o his_o soul_n that_o be_v his_o person_n or_o body_n shall_v not_o be_v leave_v in_o grave_n neither_o his_o flesh_n shall_v see_v corruption_n here_o note_n 32_o that_o where_o in_o one_o place_n he_o call_v it_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o soul_n or_o body_n immediate_o he_o name_v it_o flesh_n thus_o you_o may_v see_v how_o one_o scripture_n open_v another_o so_o hierome_n say_v moris_n scripturarum_fw-la obscuris_fw-la manifesta_fw-la subnectere_fw-la that_o be_v 64._o it_o be_v the_o order_n of_o the_o scripture_n after_o hard_a thing_n to_o join_v other_o thing_n that_o be_v plain_a saint_n augustine_n also_o say_v solet_fw-la circumstantia_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la illuminare_fw-la sententiam_fw-la the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v wont_a to_o give_v light_n and_o to_o open_v the_o meaning_n m._n theodorus_n beza_n translate_v that_o verse_n non_fw-la derelinques_fw-la animam_fw-la meam_fw-la in_o inferno_fw-la 2._o thus_o non_fw-la relinque_fw-la cadaver_fw-la meum_fw-la in_o sepulchro_fw-la for_o as_o he_o say_v nequ●_n enim_fw-la petrus_n hic_fw-la disputat_fw-la de_fw-la animi_fw-la immortalitate_fw-la sed_fw-la de_fw-la corporis_fw-la resurrectione_fw-la eaque_fw-la eiusmodi_fw-la ut_fw-la nulla_fw-la praecesserit_fw-la corruptio_fw-la peter_n faith_n he_o do_v not_o here_o in_o this_o place_n dispute_v of_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o such_o manner_n that_o no_o corruption_n can_v or_o shall_v corrupt_v it_o again_o he_o say_v dico_fw-la igitur_fw-la nunquam_fw-la praetermissuros_fw-la fuisse_fw-la euangelistas_fw-la istiusmodi_fw-la historiam_fw-la descensus_fw-la animae_fw-la christi_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la loco_fw-la &_o arbitror_fw-la quod_fw-la cum_fw-la veterum_fw-la pace_fw-la dictum_fw-la sit_fw-la somnia_fw-la esse_fw-la quacunque_fw-la de_fw-la hac_fw-la re_fw-la apud_fw-la illos_fw-la commemorantur_fw-la that_o be_v therefore_o i_o say_v that_o the_o evangelist_n will_v never_o have_v over_o pass_v or_o let_v slip_v with_o silence_n such_o a_o history_n of_o the_o descend_a of_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n into_o hell_n if_o it_o have_v be_v so_o and_o i_o judge_v &_o say_v by_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n what_o soever_o of_o this_o matter_n they_o have_v write_v or_o remember_v amongst_o they_o to_o be_v but_o dream_n and_o fantasy_n etc_n etc_n therefore_o saint_n augustine_n give_v this_o counsel_n 145._o nemo_fw-la de_fw-la christo_fw-la creda●_n nisi_fw-la quod_fw-la dese_fw-fr credi_fw-la voluit_fw-la christus_fw-la that_o be_v let_v no_o man_n believe_v more_o of_o christ_n than_o christ_n have_v will_v thou_o to_o believe_v and_o this_o be_v speak_v as_o sufficient_a for_o this_o present_a upon_o this_o place_n of_o the_o act_n now_o last_o 3.18.19_o be_v that_o place_n of_o s._n peter_n where_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v put_v to_o death_n concern_v the_o flesh_n but_o be_v quicken_v in_o the_o spirit_n 3._o by_o the_o which_o he_o also_o go_v and_o preach_v unto_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o prison_n hereupon_o they_o blow_v up_o the_o trumpet_n but_o yet_o stay_v a_o little_a thou_o must_v note_v gentle_a reader_n that_o here_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v anima_fw-la christi_fw-la of_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o he_o go_v tantum_fw-la spiritu_fw-la only_o in_o his_o spirit_n for_o as_o m._n caluin_n say_v sunt_fw-la autem_fw-la haec_fw-la long_o diversa_fw-la animam_fw-la christi_fw-la venisse_fw-la et_fw-la christum_n praedicasse_fw-la spiritus_fw-la svi_fw-la potentia_fw-la these_o be_v say_v he_o great_a difference_n to_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n to_o have_v come_v and_o to_o say_v christ_n to_o have_v preach_v by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n now_o friendly_a reader_n here_o be_v the_o difficulty_n in_o these_o two_o word_n spiritus_fw-la &_o carcer_fw-la the_o spirit_n and_o the_o prison_n understand_v that_o by_o this_o word_n spirit_n be_v not_o mean_v nor_o take_v in_o this_o place_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n but_o for_o the_o power_n of_o his_o godhead_n for_o it_o be_v not_o his_o soul_n that_o be_v able_a to_o quicken_v himself_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n quicken_v he_o that_o be_v his_o godly_a and_o divine_a power_n that_o quicken_v his_o humanity_n paul_n open_v this_o very_o plain_o to_o the_o cor._n say_v christ_n be_v crucify_v concern_v his_o infirmity_n 13.4_o yet_o live_v he_o through_o the_o power_n of_o god_n etc_n etc_n where_o peter_n name_v it_o the_o spirit_n paul_n call_v it_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o he_o call_v it_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n which_o raise_v and_o quicken_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a 2.12_o and_o to_o the_o roman_n he_o shewth_n that_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o only_o show_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n but_o be_v show_v also_o upon_o we_o all_o say_v if_o the_o spirit_n of_o he_o that_o raise_v up_o jesus_n from_o the_o dead_a 8.11_o dwell_v in_o you_o he_o that_o raise_v up_o christ_n from_o the_o dead_a shall_v also_o quicken_v your_o mortal_a body_n because_o that_o his_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o you_o by_o these_o place_n we_o may_v understand_v what_o peter_n mean_v by_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v god_n divine_a power_n and_o might_n and_o not_o the_o soul_n of_o christ._n now_o in_o that_o peter_n call_v it_o a_o prison_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v here_o 6.3_o that_o he_o understand_v by_o it_o the_o place_n of_o hell_n for_o the_o damn_a but_o he_o alude_v it_o to_o that_o place_n of_o genesis_n where_o it_o be_v say_v non_fw-la permanebit_fw-la spiritus_fw-la meus_fw-la in_o homine_fw-la inaeternum_fw-la quia_fw-la caro_fw-la est_fw-la my_o spirit_n shall_v not_o strive_v with_o man_n because_o he_o be_v but_o flesh_n so_o that_o
it_o be_v a_o common_a phrase_n of_o speech_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o peter_n here_o use_v for_o the_o prophet_n esai_n have_v the_o like_a say_n 42.7_o ut_fw-la aperires_fw-la oculos_fw-la caecorum_fw-la &_o educeres_fw-la de_fw-la conclusione_fw-la vinctum_fw-la de_fw-la domo_fw-la carceris_fw-la sedentes_fw-la in_o tenebris_fw-la that_o thou_o may_v open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a and_o bring_v out_o the_o prisoner_n from_o the_o prison_n and_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n out_o of_o the_o prison_n house_n 29.9_o and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v ut_fw-la dicetis_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la vincti_fw-la sunt_fw-la exite_fw-la &_o his_o qui_fw-la in_o tenebris_fw-la revelamini_fw-la that_o thou_o may_v say_v to_o the_o prisoner_n 4.3.23_o go_v forth_o and_o to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o darkness_n show_v yourselves_o saint_n paul_n in_o a_o manner_n use_v the_o like_a phrase_n say_v before_o say_v come_v we_o be_v keep_v under_o the_o law_n and_o shut_v up_o unto_o the_o faith_n which_o shall_v afterward_o be_v reveal_v 61.1_o our_o saviour_n christ_n use_v it_o often_o where_o it_o be_v write_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o because_o he_o have_v anoint_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o poor_a he_o have_v send_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v heal_v the_o break_a heart_a that_o i_o shall_v preach_v deliverance_n to_o the_o captive_n and_o recover_a of_o sight_n to_o the_o blind_a that_o i_o shall_v set_v at_o liberty_n they_o that_o be_v bruise_v saint_n peter_n himself_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n follow_v 4.6_o speak_v of_o this_o matter_n but_o yet_o in_o other_o word_n say_v for_o unto_o this_o purpose_n be_v the_o gospel_n preach_v also_o unto_o the_o dead_a that_o they_o may_v be_v condemn_v accord_v to_o man_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o may_v live_v accord_v to_o god_n in_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v not_o to_o the_o dead_a body_n in_o the_o grave_n nor_o to_o the_o soul_n in_o hell_n but_o to_o they_o of_o time_n past_a which_o now_o be_v dead_a to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o may_v have_v be_v condemn_v or_o dead_a unto_o sin_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o may_v have_v live_v to_o god_n in_o the_o spirit_n which_o two_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o gospel_n ●_o and_o in_o his_o second_o epistle_n he_o call_v they_o the_o world_n of_o the_o ungodly_a say_v neither_o have_v spare_v the_o old_a world_n but_o save_v no_o the_o eight_o person_n a_o preacher_n of_o righteousness_n and_o bring_v in_o the_o flood_n upon_o the_o world_n of_o the_o ungodly_a etc_n etc_n so_o now_o we_o may_v perceive_v by_o the_o conference_n of_o those_o place_n what_o peter_n mean_v by_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o prison_n that_o be_v all_o those_o which_o be_v in_o the_o prison_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n etc_n etc_n for_o peter_n only_a purpose_n in_o this_o place_n be_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o universal_a preach_n of_o repentance_n which_o be_v preach_v in_o the_o time_n of_o no_o even_o with_o the_o same_o open_a and_o universal_a preach_n 2.5_o that_o be_v do_v in_o all_o the_o world_n in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n after_o his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v preach_v in_o the_o time_n of_o no_n in_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v by_o his_o spiritual_a preach_v of_o repentance_n do_v call_v the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o prison_n that_o be_v those_o wicked_a man_n that_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o the_o prison_n of_o wickedness_n and_o sin_n and_o for_o their_o sinfulness_n be_v worthy_a of_o death_n and_o hell_n so_o say_v titleman_n 3._o veniens_fw-la ad_fw-la illos_fw-la incredulos_fw-la homines_fw-la qui_fw-la tunc_fw-la in_o tenebrosa_fw-la caligine_fw-la errorum_fw-la snorum_fw-la iacebant_fw-la demersi_fw-la ▪_o veniens_fw-la inquam_fw-la spiritu_fw-la praedicavit_fw-la eye_n ad_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la reverti_fw-la ut_fw-la possent_fw-la cum_fw-la no_n saluari_fw-la inspirando_fw-la prophetas_fw-la &_o no_o qui_fw-la ex_fw-la ore_fw-la domini_fw-la populum_fw-la a_o m●lis_fw-la revocare_fw-la quaerebant_fw-la that_o be_v come_v to_o those_o unbelieve_a man_n which_o then_o do_v lie_v drown_v in_o the_o darekenesse_n of_o their_o error_n come_v i_o say_v in_o spirit_n do_v preach_v to_o they_o to_o turn_v to_o repentance_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v with_o no_n inspire_v the_o prophet_n and_o no_o do_v seek_v to_o call_v the_o people_n back_o from_o their_o evilness_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n also_o he_o set_v forth_o the_o merciful_a goodness_n and_o long_a sufferance_n in_o that_o he_o call_v they_o to_o repentance_n by_o no_n while_o the_o ark_n be_v a_o prepare_v by_o the_o space_n of_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o year_n which_o levity_n goodness_n and_o long_a sufferance_n of_o god_o they_o do_v despise_v 3.15_o and_o neglect_v for_o which_o the_o flood_n of_o god_n vengeance_n come_v upon_o they_o that_o be_v disobedient_a in_o the_o time_n of_o noe._n the_o very_a text_n itself_o plain_o declare_v that_o this_o exposition_n be_v true_a for_o if_o we_o mark_v the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n as_o they_o lie_v in_o order_n 3.18.19_o it_o will_v soon_o open_v peter_n whole_a meaning_n the_o word_n be_v these_o but_o be_v quicken_v in_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o he_o also_o go_v and_o preach_v unto_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o prison_n than_o immediate_o follow_v what_o those_o spirit_n be_v which_o say_v he_o be_v in_o time_n pass_v disobedient_a when_o once_o the_o long_o suffer_v of_o god_n abode_n now_o he_o show_v when_o it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o noe._n then_o he_o declare_v the_o time_n and_o how_o long_o they_o be_v disobedient_a while_o the_o ark_n be_v prepare_v say_v he_o 6.3_o which_o latter_a word_n make_v it_o plain_a for_o he_o say_v he_o preach_v in_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o prisoner_n that_o be_v disobedient_a while_o the_o ark_n be_v a_o make_v so_o that_o it_o appear_v that_o those_o prisoner_n be_v a_o live_v at_o the_o make_v and_o prepare_v of_o the_o ark_n and_o during_o all_o that_o time_n of_o a_o 120._o year_n christ_n preach_v to_o they_o in_o his_o spirit_n 2.20.21_o by_o no_o the_o eight_o person_n a_o preacher_n of_o righteousness_n to_o turn_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n and_o so_o be_v save_v and_o because_o they_o will_v not_o in_o their_o life_n time_n obey_v god_n word_n be_v cast_v now_o after_o their_o life_n into_o judgement_n of_o hell_n fire_n as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o and_o by_o the_o same_o argument_n 10.20_o peter_n go_v about_o to_o move_v the_o jew_n by_o their_o example_n to_o be_v obedient_a to_o god_n calling_n that_o call_v they_o by_o his_o spirit_n through_o his_o preacher_n and_o minister_n by_o his_o long_a sufferance_n to_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n of_o life_n while_o they_o be_v here_o in_o the_o earth_n otherwise_o for_o their_o disobedience_n now_o in_o their_o life_n time_n 13.20_o unto_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o minister_n shall_v be_v damn_v after_o this_o life_n as_o they_o be_v christ_n our_o saviour_n do_v teach_v this_o plain_o at_o who_o mouth_n peter_n learn_v this_o that_o now_o he_o have_v teach_v in_o this_o epistle_n to_o the_o jew_n when_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n say_v as_o the_o day_n of_o no_n be_v so_o likewise_o shall_v the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v 17.26_o for_o they_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v marry_v and_o give_v in_o marriage_n unto_o the_o day_n that_o no_o enter_v into_o the_o ark_n and_o know_v nothing_o till_o the_o flood_n come_v and_o take_v they_o away_o so_o also_o shall_v the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v and_o then_o immediate_o after_o he_o give_v this_o commandment_n to_o they_o say_v wake_v therefore_o for_o you_o know_v not_o what_o hour_n your_o master_n will_v come_v 13.33_o therefore_o be_v you_o also_o ready_a for_o in_o the_o hour_n that_o you_o think_v not_o will_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v now_o we_o may_v see_v that_o all_o this_o be_v speak_v to_o that_o end_n to_o move_v we_o by_o their_o example_n to_o turn_v from_o our_o sin_n and_o wicked_a life_n and_o not_o to_o prove_v hereby_o 10.11_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o any_o of_o the_o righteous_a before_o christ_n come_n be_v in_o hell_n and_o so_o christ_n soul_n must_v fetch_v they_o out_o which_o be_v but_o the_o imagination_n of_o man_n for_o so_o say_v erasmus_n symbolum_n talia_n multa_fw-la &_o circa_fw-la hanc_fw-la adiecticiam_fw-la particulam_fw-la quidam_fw-la commenti_fw-la sunt_fw-la narrantes_fw-la quos_fw-la christus_fw-la abduxerit_fw-la quos_fw-la ibi_fw-la reliquerit_fw-la quae_fw-la quibus_fw-la ad_fw-la singulos_fw-la circulos_fw-la sit_fw-la locutus_fw-la etc_o etc_o that_o be_v many_o such_o manner_n of_o thing_n have_v certain_a man_n
119._o of_o the_o office_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o how_o it_o may_v err_v and_o how_o it_o can_v not_o err_v cap._n 39_o fol._n 121._o our_o offence_n and_o sin_n be_v forgive_v we_o by_o faith_n through_o christ_n and_o not_o by_o our_o work_n and_o merit_n cap._n 40._o fol._n 123._o i'faith_o only_o justify_v we_o before_o god._n cap._n 41._o fol._n 127._o it_o be_v no_o presumption_n to_o be_v sure_a and_o certain_a of_o our_o salvation_n cap._n 42._o fol._n 132._o of_o free_a will_n cap._n 43._o fol._n 133._o of_o the_o general_a resurrection_n both_o of_o the_o godly_a and_o wicked_a at_o the_o last_o day_n cap._n 44._o fol._n 142._o finis_fw-la ¶_o a_o brief_a sum_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n ¶_o the_o first_o chapter_n ¶_o of_o god_n creation_n and_o governance_n of_o all_o thing_n of_o christ_n conception_n and_o birth_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n etc_n etc_n i_o do_v not_o only_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v a_o true_a live_n god_n etc_n who_o by_o his_o almighty_a power_n do_v of_o nothing_o make_v both_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o the_o creature_n that_o be_v in_o they_o both_o visible_a and_o invisible_a but_o also_o i_o do_v unfeigned_o believe_v that_o the_o same_o true_a live_n god_n creature_n who_o by_o his_o almighty_a power_n have_v create_v all_o thing_n and_o now_o by_o his_o unsearchable_a wisdom_n and_o unspeakable_a goodness_n do_v govern_v rule_n and_o preserve_v all_o his_o creature_n will_v be_v a_o most_o love_a &_o merciful_a father_n unto_o i_o and_o unto_o all_o the_o faithful_a believer_n will_n for_o as_o he_o be_v almighty_a and_o able_a to_o do_v what_o soever_o he_o will_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n so_o that_o nothing_o be_v able_a to_o resist_v or_o withstand_v his_o holy_a and_o bless_a will_n for_o even_o the_o very_a devil_n 12.7_o and_o wicked_a spirit_n will_v they_o will_v they_o must_v be_v obedient_a unto_o he_o and_o can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o he_o do_v appoint_v suffer_v and_o permit_v they_o so_o be_v he_o most_o love_a and_o merciful_a unto_o all_o those_o that_o put_v all_o their_o whole_a trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o and_o therefore_o we_o must_v take_v hold_n upon_o his_o fatherly_a promise_n ghost_n through_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a beget_v son_n our_o lord_n who_o be_v true_a and_o natural_a god_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n afore_o all_o beginning_n coeternal_a and_o coequal_a with_o he_o in_o power_n and_o godhead_n do_v at_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n take_v our_o frail_a nature_n upon_o he_o and_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o mighty_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o bless_a virgin_n womb_n of_o who_o he_o take_v his_o undefiled_a substance_n to_o wit_n his_o mortal_a body_n that_o so_o he_o may_v offer_v himself_o a_o omnisufficiente_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n his_o father_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n 8.3_o and_o deliver_v we_o all_o that_o take_v hold_v by_o faith_n upon_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o bloodshedding_n from_o the_o curse_n and_o malediction_n of_o the_o law_n whereunto_o all_o man_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v subject_n 4.15_o he_o then_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n and_o touch_v his_o manhood_n subject_v to_o all_o manner_n of_o infirmity_n that_o we_o be_v subject_n unto_o pilot_n sin_n only_o be_v except_v do_v suffer_v a_o most_o cruel_a and_o opprobrious_a death_n upon_o the_o cross_n under_o poncius_fw-la pilate_n who_o be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o emperor_n deputy_n and_o lieutenant_n in_o the_o land_n of_o jewrie_n 27.2_o before_o who_o he_o be_v bring_v and_o by_o his_o determinate_a sentence_n judge_v and_o condemn_v and_o so_o deliver_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o tormentor_n to_o the_o end_n that_o i_o and_o all_o faithful_a believer_n shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v pilot_n before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o almighty_a god_n nor_o put_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o devil_n nor_o yet_o send_v into_o the_o everlasting_a fire_n of_o hell_n but_o that_o i_o and_o all_o other_o that_o believe_v true_o shall_v find_v favour_n and_o be_v quiet_v before_o the_o great_a and_o everlasting_a judge_n 8.33_o and_o say_v bold_o with_o the_o holy_a apostle_n who_o shall_v lay_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o god_n choose_v it_o be_v god_o that_o justify_v who_o shall_v then_o condemn_v it_o be_v christ_n which_o be_v dead_a yea_o rather_o which_o be_v rise_v again_o 4.16_o which_o be_v also_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o let_v we_o therefore_o go_v bold_o unto_o the_o seat_n of_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v mercy_n and_o find_v grace_n to_o help_v in_o the_o time_n of_o need_n thus_o be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v for_o to_o deliver_v we_o that_o believe_v from_o the_o fearful_a judgement_n of_o god_n and_o from_o the_o condemnation_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o we_o for_o our_o sin_n crucify_v he_o be_v with_o all_o dispitefulnesse_n nail_v upon_o a_o cross_n as_o it_o be_v signify_v and_o prefigure_v before_o by_o the_o li_n up_o of_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n in_o the_o wilderness_n 3.14_o for_o as_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v elevate_v and_o lift_v up_o in_o the_o desert_n by_o moses_n for_o to_o heal_v all_o those_o that_o do_v look_v upon_o it_o so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n as_o he_o himself_o do_v expound_v shall_v be_v hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o lift_v up_o on_o high_a for_o to_o heal_v all_o those_o that_o be_v deadly_a stonge_z and_o wound_v by_o the_o old_a serpent_n the_o devil_n signify_v and_o as_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n have_v the_o figure_n form_n and_o shape_n of_o a_o serpent_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o serpent_n sinner_n nor_o yet_o have_v any_o venom_n or_o poison_n so_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n do_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o sinner_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v no_o sinner_n but_o be_v and_o be_v a_o most_o wholesome_a medicine_n and_o salve_v unto_o all_o poor_a sinner_n that_o do_v behold_v and_o look_v upon_o he_o by_o faith_n and_o that_o seek_v for_o salvation_n no_o where_o else_o but_o in_o the_o only_a merit_n of_o his_o death_n passion_n and_o bloodshedding_n although_o this_o mean_a and_o way_n to_o save_v man_n do_v seem_v very_o vile_a and_o strange_a unto_o man_n reason_n 1.18_o which_o judge_v this_o wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o cross_n to_o be_v mere_a foolishness_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o as_o there_o be_v no_o physic_n medicine_n nor_o salve_v that_o can_v heal_v those_o that_o be_v sting_v of_o the_o fiery_a serpent_n but_o only_o the_o look_v upon_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n that_o be_v erect_v &_o set_v up_o appoint_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n so_o have_v we_o no_o manner_n of_o physic_n or_o salve_v against_o sin_n &_o everlasting_a death_n for_o to_o bring_v soul_n health_n &_o salvation_n unto_o we_o but_o only_o jesus_n christ_n be_v crucify_v who_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o of_o god_n for_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v unto_o we_o to_o choose_v the_o medicine_n or_o salve_v but_o it_o pertain_v only_o to_o god_n our_o sovereign_a physician_n who_o alone_o be_v able_a to_o heal_v we_o from_o this_o deadly_a sickness_n who_o alone_o know_v what_o medicine_n or_o salve_n be_v necessary_a for_o we_o and_o give_v such_o as_o please_v he_o &_o such_o as_o he_o give_v be_v sufficient_a so_o that_o we_o can_v find_v none_o other_o that_o be_v worth_a any_o thing_n and_o that_o do_v not_o rather_o bring_v death_n then_o life_n if_o we_o do_v put_v any_o confidence_n in_o it_o or_o seek_v to_o obtain_v through_o it_o salvation_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n also_o because_o that_o it_o be_v write_v 27.15_o curse_a be_v every_o one_o that_o continue_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o this_o law_n to_o fulfil_v they_o whereby_o all_o man_n be_v bring_v under_o the_o malediction_n 27.15_o and_o curse_v of_o the_o law_n and_o so_o make_v the_o child_n of_o everlasting_a damnation_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n do_v vouchsafe_v for_o to_o deliver_v we_o from_o this_o curse_n and_o malediction_n of_o the_o law_n to_o hang_v on_o a_o tree_n and_o to_o be_v make_v accurse_v for_o we_o for_o it_o be_v write_v 3.13_o curse_v be_v every_o one_o that_o hang_v on_o tree_n that_o the_o blessing_n of_o abraham_n which_o be_v promise_v he_o in_o his_o seed_n who_o be_v our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n may_v come_v upon_o we_o 22.6_o for_o who_o sake_n and_o love_n he_o be_v make_v low_a than_o all_o man_n yea_o he_o be_v repute_v as_o a_o worm_n and_o not_o as_o a_o man_n he_o
of_o they_o howbeit_o i_o think_v that_o he_o do_v understand_v origene_n jerome_n and_o tertullian_n but_o now_o we_o will_v see_v how_o well_o this_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n objection_n first_o and_o foremost_a if_o they_o will_v have_v the_o punishment_n pain_n and_o torment_n that_o christ_n suffer_v to_o be_v in_o all_o point_n corespondent_a unto_o those_o sinner_n for_o who_o christ_n die_v have_v deserve_v it_o have_v not_o be_v only_o necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v have_v suffer_v here_o in_o the_o body_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n shall_v also_o have_v suffer_v in_o hell_n for_o a_o while_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v suffer_v both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n everlasting_a punishment_n with_o the_o damn_a 5.19_o but_o god_n his_o father_n do_v content_v himself_o with_o the_o pain_n and_o torment_n that_o he_o be_v in_o for_o a_o while_n have_v a_o respect_n not_o only_o unto_o the_o pain_n that_o he_o do_v suffer_v but_o unto_o his_o righteousness_n innocence_n and_o obedience_n which_o cause_v he_o to_o take_v and_o allow_v the_o pain_n which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v suffer_v for_o a_o time_n note_n as_o sufficient_a for_o to_o obtain_v and_o purchase_v unto_o the_o faithful_a believer_n a_o full_a deliverance_n from_o everlasting_a pain_n and_o torment_n which_o they_o have_v deserve_v through_o their_o sin_n suffer_v moreover_o it_o be_v no_o need_n at_o all_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n shall_v go_v down_o into_o hell_n for_o to_o suffer_v there_o for_o it_o have_v suffer_v punishment_n enough_o here_o upon_o earth_n sith_o that_o in_o it_o i_o mean_v in_o his_o soul_n he_o do_v bear_v the_o same_o judgement_n and_o condemnation_n that_o we_o have_v deserve_v for_o the_o body_n do_v not_o suffer_v without_o the_o soul_n yea_o if_o the_o sorrow_n and_o pain_n of_o the_o one_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o sorrow_n and_o pain_n of_o the_o other_o while_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n be_v join_v together_o by_o life_n we_o shall_v have_v a_o just_a occasion_n to_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n do_v suffer_v afore_o the_o body_n and_o that_o the_o sorrow_n and_o grief_n of_o the_o body_n do_v proceed_v and_o come_v first_o of_o the_o soul_n 18._o for_o else_o what_o do_v these_o word_n mean_v my_o soul_n be_v heavy_a unto_o the_o very_a death_n whereof_o come_v this_o woeful_a sweat_n that_o do_v run_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n as_o drop_n of_o blood_n and_o the_o complaint_n that_o he_o make_v to_o god_o his_o father_n in_o the_o garden_n whereof_o do_v also_o come_v 22._o that_o great_a fear_n trouble_n and_o horror_n that_o he_o be_v possess_v withal_o as_o the_o evangelist_n do_v testify_v unto_o we_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v in_o a_o extreme_a agony_n and_o much_o great_a than_o man_n wisdom_n can_v comprehend_v what_o need_n shall_v he_o have_v of_o the_o angel_n for_o to_o comfort_v he_o again_o who_o will_v not_o wonder_v and_o marvel_v to_o see_v christ_n our_o saviour_n so_o sore_o afraid_a and_o trouble_a as_o the_o evangelist_n do_v set_v he_o forth_o unto_o we_o for_o the_o death_n that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v if_o he_o shall_v have_v have_v respect_n to_o none_o other_o thing_n but_o only_o unto_o the_o death_n do_v we_o think_v that_o there_o be_v less_o heart_n less_o courage_n constancy_n and_o manfulness_n in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n then_o in_o many_o thousand_o of_o martyr_n that_o have_v go_v so_o joyful_o and_o mere_o unto_o their_o death_n for_o his_o sake_n but_o what_o do_v i_o speak_v of_o martyr_n how_o many_o wicked_a doer_n do_v we_o see_v daily_o go_v to_o their_o death_n which_o they_o have_v deserve_v with_o their_o wicked_a and_o abominable_a do_n most_o manful_o and_o with_o such_o a_o face_n and_o countenance_n that_o you_o will_v think_v that_o they_o do_v go_v to_o a_o feast_n or_o banquet_n shall_v we_o say_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v less_o courage_n death_n than_o these_o have_v in_o so_o good_a a_o cause_n as_o he_o do_v die_v in_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v then_o that_o there_o be_v some_o great_a thing_n than_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v at_o hand_n somewhat_o there_o be_v i_o say_v that_o be_v of_o more_o weight_n and_o importance_n then_o that_o which_o do_v appear_v outward_o his_o body_n be_v not_o yet_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o tormentor_n he_o have_v only_o the_o death_n before_o his_o eye_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o imagination_n of_o it_o which_o trouble_v he_o nothing_o so_o much_o as_o the_o dreadful_a judgement_n of_o god_n which_o he_o know_v he_o must_v needs_o bear_v when_o he_o do_v then_o enter_v into_o this_o agony_n than_o do_v he●_z begin_v already_o to_o descend_v and_o go_v down_o into_o this_o horrible_a hell_n hell_n where_o he_o be_v detain_v and_o keep_v a_o while_n for_o our_o sake_n for_o what_o great_a hell_n can_v one_o imagine_v to_o be_v unto_o man_n than_o to_o feel_v god_n wrath_n thorough_o kindle_v against_o he_o to_o be_v fain_o to_o bear_v his_o terrible_a judgement_n and_o fury_n and_o to_o be_v in_o the_o same_o estate_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v in_o when_o he_o do_v cry_v out_o 27._o say_v my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o although_o he_o be_v true_a and_o natural_a god_n and_o also_o true_a and_o natural_a man_n so_o that_o his_o godhead_n can_v not_o be_v separate_v from_o his_o manhood_n yet_o the_o humanity_n be_v then_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v utter_o forsake_v of_o the_o divinity_n and_o leave_v succourless_a and_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n drive_v down_o into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n of_o hell_n and_o give_v over_o of_o god._n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o need_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n shall_v go_v down_o after_o any_o other_o sort_n for_o to_o suffer_v the_o pain_n and_o torment_n that_o we_o have_v deserve_v for_o the_o place_n do_v not_o aggravate_v the_o pain_n note_n or_o make_v they_o more_o heavy_a and_o grievous_a but_o the_o heavy_a and_o intolerable_a burden_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o judgement_n wheresoever_o it_o be_v feel_v or_o whersoever_o man_n be_v fain_o to_o bear_v it_o therefore_o they_o that_o do_v affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n must_v needs_o of_o necessity_n be_v suffer_v in_o hell_n do_v plain_o declare_v that_o they_o know_v not_o what_o hell_n be_v nor_o what_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v suffer_v for_o they_o nor_o yet_o what_o the_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n be_v i_o allow_v better_a the_o opinion_n of_o they_o hell_n which_o say_v that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o spiritual_a descend_a or_o go_v down_o whereby_o it_o be_v declare_v and_o preach_v through_o the_o efficacy_n virtue_n and_o power_n of_o christes_fw-fr holy_a spirit_n unto_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o reprobate_n that_o be_v in_o the_o unquenchable_a fire_n of_o hell_n that_o their_o unbelief_n and_o stubbornness_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o eternal_a and_o everlasting_a damnation_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o deliverance_n from_o it_o by_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n christ_n where_o unto_o the_o word_n of_o saint_n peter_n seem_v well_o to_o agree_v say_v christ_n have_v once_o suffer_v for_o sin_n the_o just_a for_o the_o unjust_a for_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o god_n and_o be_v kill_v as_o pertain_v to_o the_o flesh_n but_o be_v quicken_v in_o ●he_n spirit_n in_o which_o spirit_n he_o also_o go_v and_o preach_v unto_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o prison_n which_o be_v in_o time_n past_o disobedient_a end_n so_o we_o perceive_v by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o both_o the_o damn_a and_o save_v have_v alone_a manner_n of_o feel_v of_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n but_o yet_o to_o diverse_a end_n for_o the_o one_o that_o be_v to_o the_o godly_a that_o be_v in_o abraham_n bosom_n be_v certify_v by_o the_o divine_a power_n and_o godhead_n of_o christ_n that_o now_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o time_n come_v 1._o to_o fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o joy_n and_o everlasting_a salvation_n that_o they_o long_o look_v hope_a and_o thirst_v for_o and_o to_o the_o damn_a be_v preach_v christ_n crucify_v but_o to_o the_o increase_n and_o augment_v of_o their_o own_o damnation_n for_o that_o they_o have_v no_o part_n or_o portion_n by_o his_o death_n of_o god_n favour_n but_o rather_o a_o heavy_a judgement_n because_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v christ_n be_v odour_n mortis_fw-la ad_fw-la mortem_fw-la his_fw-la etc_n etc_n that_o be_v the_o savour_n of_o death_n
unto_o death_n to_o those_o that_o believe_v not_o 2._o but_o howsoever_o man_n list_v to_o take_v it_o this_o shall_v be_v my_o belief_n that_o the_o go_v down_o of_o christ_n into_o hell_n be_v be_v our_o deliverance_n from_o thence_o for_o except_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v be_v environ_v and_o compass_v about_o with_o the_o sorrow_n and_o pain_n of_o hell_n and_o in_o a_o manner_n overwhelm_v with_o they_o for_o a_o while_n hell_n will_v have_v swallow_v we_o up_o unto_o everlasting_a damnation_n we_o shall_v have_v perish_v utter_o both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n we_o shall_v never_o have_v escape_v the_o tyranny_n of_o satan_n nor_o be_v heal_v of_o the_o deadly_a wound_n that_o we_o have_v receive_v of_o that_o old_a venomous_a serpent_n the_o devil_n and_o enemy_n to_o our_o salvation_n so_o that_o 12._o i_o deny_v not_o that_o article_n of_o christ_n dissension_n but_o of_o the_o manner_n how_o be_v the_o question_n for_o when_o it_o be_v say_v he_o will_v not_o leave_v his_o soul_n in_o hell_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o his_o descend_v into_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a but_o that_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a that_o be_v he_o shall_v not_o leave_v he_o in_o death_n or_o lie_v continual_o in_o the_o grave_n for_o the_o soul_n in_o that_o place_n be_v take_v for_o the_o whole_a natural_a man_n etc_n etc_n for_o seek_v all_o the_o scripture_n from_o one_o end_n to_o a_o neither_o and_o you_o shall_v never_o find_v that_o christ_n in_o body_n or_o soul_n hell_n descend_v into_o hell_n but_o that_o he_o die_v and_o rose_z again_o the_o third_o day_n accord_v to_o the_o scripture_n for_o you_o shall_v note_v that_o the_o east_n church_n have_v it_o not_o the_o counsel_n of_o nicen_n creed_n have_v it_o not_o nor_o the_o counsel_n of_o ephesus_n etc_n etc_n but_o to_o be_v short_a you_o shall_v understand_v that_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n three_o manner_n of_o way_n videl_z first_o in_o power_n as_o when_o the_o uaile_n of_o the_o temple_n do_v rend_v in_o twain_o from_o the_o top_n to_o the_o bottom_n and_o the_o earth_n do_v quake_v and_o the_o stone_n be_v cleave_v and_o the_o grave_n do_v open_v themselves_o and_o many_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o sleep_v arise_v and_o come_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n after_o his_o resurrection_n power_n and_o go_v into_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o appear_v unto_o many_o 19.40_o second_o in_o spirit_n when_o as_o he_o say_v my_o soul_n be_v heavy_a even_o unto_o the_o death_n and_o when_o he_o cry_v my_o god_n my_o my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o the_o third_o in_o person_n when_o as_o he_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o grave_n as_o we_o read_v that_o they_o take_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n 4.9_o and_o wrap_v it_o in_o linen_n clothes_n with_o the_o odour_n as_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jews_n be_v to_o bury_v &_o paul_n say_v now_o in_o that_o he_o ascend_v what_o be_v it_o but_o that_o he_o have_v also_o descend_v first_o into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n this_o dear_a brother_n be_v my_o belief_n ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_o and_o not_o upon_o man_n reader_n or_o man_n dream_n or_o phantacy_n and_o report_v not_o that_o i_o do_v deny_v any_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n god_n forbid_v i_o shall_v wherefore_o read_v with_o judgement_n and_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o mildness_n come_v not_o pray_fw-mi iudicio_fw-la but_o with_o iudicio_fw-la hell_n some_o there_o be_v again_o that_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n go_v not_o down_o into_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a but_o that_o it_o go_v only_o down_o for_o to_o deliver_v the_o patriarch_n and_o other_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n out_o of_o the_o limb_n ▪_o and_o also_o for_o to_o deliver_v the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v of_o less_o perfection_n than_o the_o patriarch_n and_o other_o holy_a father_n out_o of_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n where_o they_o be_v keep_v for_o to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o those_o sin_n that_o they_o have_v do_v no_o penance_n for_o in_o this_o world_n be_v but_o as_o for_o limb_n i_o know_v none_o but_o abraham_n bosom_n which_o to_o say_v true_o be_v that_o most_o bless_a life_n which_o they_o that_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n that_o abraham_n do_v shall_v enjoy_v after_o this_o world_n ¶_o the_o vij_o chapter_n ¶_o christ_n be_v our_o true_a purgatory_n and_o the_o papist_n purgatory_n be_v false_a 1._o as_o for_o purgatory_n i_o know_v none_o other_o but_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o only_a saviour_n that_o do_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n again_o none_o other_o fire_n do_v i_o know_v in_o all_o the_o scripture_n that_o have_v any_o virtue_n or_o power_n to_o purge_v sin_n 3._o but_o the_o fire_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n wherewith_o he_o promise_v to_o baptise_v his_o elect_a and_o choose_v and_o the_o fire_n of_o his_o sacred_a and_o divine_a word_n whereof_o himself_o speak_v on_o this_o manner_n 15._o you_o be_v clean_o because_o of_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o you_o this_o be_v true_a purgatory_n wherein_o all_o must_v be_v purge_v afore_o that_o they_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god._n that_o other_o purgatory_n that_o they_o have_v invent_v of_o their_o own_o head_n purgatory_n without_o and_o against_o god_n word_n be_v a_o most_o devilish_a and_o abominable_a blaspheme_n against_o the_o merit_n and_o bloodshedding_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n death_n and_o passion_n for_o by_o it_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n be_v make_v a_o unperfect_a saviour_n and_o of_o less_o authority_n power_n and_o strength_n than_o they_o will_v have_v that_o fleshe_o idol_n of_o rome_n and_o most_o pernicious_a antichrist_n to_o be_v blasphemy_n unto_o who_o they_o dare_v attribute_n and_o give_v full_a authority_n and_o power_n to_o absolve_v man_n and_o to_o grant_n unto_o they_o a_o full_a pardon_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n even_o a_o poena_fw-la &_o a_o culpa_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o deliver_v they_o not_o only_o from_o the_o offence_n itself_o but_o also_o from_o the_o pain_n or_o punishment_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o it_o whereas_o poor_a christ_n who_o have_v shed_v his_o heart_n blood_n for_o we_o and_o who_o have_v tread_v the_o wine_n press_v alone_o be_v scarce_o able_a by_o their_o doctrine_n to_o forgive_v we_o our_o offence_n at_o least_o he_o can_v release_v we_o of_o the_o pain_n 63.5_o for_o if_o it_o be_v of_o his_o forgive_n we_o must_v suffer_v the_o pain_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o our_o sin_n in_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n till_o we_o have_v make_v satisfaction_n for_o they_o or_o till_o we_o have_v buy_v they_o out_o at_o the_o antichrist_n hand_n and_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o shaveling_n or_o else_o we_o must_v make_v a_o full_a satisfaction_n for_o they_o here_o in_o this_o world_n while_o we_o be_v here_o yet_o a_o live_v if_o at_o least_o we_o intend_v for_o to_o escape_v that_o hot_a burn_a fire_n of_o they_o so_o that_o every_o way_n christ_n shall_v be_v but_o half_a a_o a_o saviour_n and_o god_n his_o father_n a_o most_o abominable_a and_o deceitful_a liar_n for_o he_o say_v at_o what_o time_n soever_o a_o sinner_n do_v repent_v he_o of_o his_o sin_n 18._o from_o the_o bottom_n of_o his_o heart_n i_o will_v put_v his_o wickedness_n out_o of_o my_o remembrance_n so_o that_o it_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v think_v upon_o how_o be_v this_o promise_n fulfil_v false_a i_o pray_v you_o if_o he_o do_v so_o cruel_o punish_v our_o wickedness_n and_o offence_n in_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n after_o that_o he_o have_v forgive_v and_o pardon_v they_o be_v this_o to_o think_v no_o more_o upon_o they_o what_o can_v these_o devilish_a and_o abominable_a sophister_n allege_v now_o for_o themselves_o will_v they_o say_v that_o god_o be_v a_o liar_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o perform_v and_o fulfil_v his_o promise_n most_o true_o either_o they_o must_v say_v so_o what_o start_v hole_n soever_o they_o can_v find_v out_o or_o else_o confess_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v most_o detestable_a and_o also_o blasphemous_a against_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n promise_n and_o against_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o most_o precious_a death_n passion_n and_o bloodshedding_n of_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o a_o neither_o place_n this_o most_o merciful_a father_n and_o bounteous_a lord_n who_o be_v always_o true_a and_o most_o faithful_a in_o all_o his_o promise_n do_v cry_v out_o say_v i_o be_o he_o i_o be_o he_o that_o take_v away_o thy_o wickedness_n 43._o and_o that_o for_o my_o own_o sake_n and_o thy_o sin_n will_v i_o remember_v no_o more_o here_o
we_o say_v that_o they_o all_o be_v damn_v condemn_a and_o cast_v away_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n and_o prophet_n be_v in_o no_o such_o belief_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o moses_n who_o by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o year_n 5._o that_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n do_v wander_v in_o the_o wilderness_n do_v not_o circumcise_v the_o man_n child_n that_o be_v bear_v there_o but_o defer_v the_o circumcision_n since_o their_o come_n out_o of_o egipte_n until_o they_o enter_v into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v that_o many_o may_v die_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n not_o have_v their_o foreskin_n cut_v of_o and_o though_o none_o have_v die_v yet_o any_o man_n may_v have_v judge_v that_o both_o moses_n and_o all_o the_o other_o israelite_n do_v against_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n because_o that_o they_o minister_v not_o the_o circumcision_n upon_o that_o day_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v but_o these_o ancient_a father_n do_v well_o declare_v unto_o we_o by_o their_o example_n how_o we_o ought_v to_o understand_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n for_o although_o it_o be_v write_v of_o the_o circumcision_n this_o be_v my_o testament_n 17._o that_o you_o shall_v keep_v betwixt_o i_o and_o you_o and_o thy_o seed_n after_o thou_o the_o day_n be_v appoint_v when_o it_o shall_v be_v minister_v and_o give_v with_o many_o other_o like_o circumstance_n yet_o they_o understand_v right_o well_o that_o this_o be_v a_o public_a ceremony_n which_o be_v as_o a_o most_o sure_o witness_v of_o the_o covenant_n that_o god_o have_v make_v betwixt_o he_o and_o his_o people_n in_o the_o israelitishe_a church_n as_o the_o paschall_n lamb_n and_o other_o sacrament_n be_v therefore_o when_o they_o have_v have_v a_o just_a impediment_n or_o let_v or_o when_o they_o want_v time_n and_o place_n and_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o their_o ceremony_n they_o make_v no_o great_a conscience_n to_o leave_v they_o unministre_v nor_o yet_o think_v that_o their_o soul_n health_n or_o salvation_n shall_v be_v in_o any_o danger_n for_o it_o as_o long_o as_o they_o know_v that_o the_o thing_n come_v not_o through_o their_o negligence_n nor_o through_o the_o contempt_n of_o god_n holy_a ordinance_n circumcision_n as_o than_o they_o do_v judge_v that_o the_o woman_n shall_v be_v save_v through_o faith_n and_o by_o the_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a circumcision_n without_o the_o other_o that_o be_v minister_v in_o the_o flesh_n outward_o so_o they_o do_v judge_v of_o the_o man_n child_n in_o the_o time_n of_o necessity_n know_v that_o they_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o testament_n and_o covenant_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o do_v of_o his_o mere_a grace_n and_o mercy_n grant_v salvation_n unto_o his_o choose_a and_o elect_a which_o he_o give_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n as_o it_o please_v he_o as_o well_o without_o sacrament_n as_o with_o sacrament_n cornelius_n as_o we_o may_v evident_o see_v by_o cornelius_n and_o those_o that_o be_v in_o his_o house_n who_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n sacrament_n afore_o that_o they_o be_v baptize_v by_o peter_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o despise_v not_o the_o outward_a baptism_n although_o they_o be_v already_o baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o that_o man_n be_v too_o presumptuous_a and_o arrogant_a that_o will_v despise_v baptism_n which_o be_v institute_v and_o ordain_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n 3._o sith_o that_o he_o himself_o who_o be_v the_o fountain_n and_o well_o of_o all_o holiness_n that_o do_v sanctify_v all_o sinner_n and_o who_o baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o fire_n do_v not_o despise_v the_o baptism_n of_o john_n zacharies_n son_n and_o john_n baptist_n himself_o 1._o be_v he_o not_o sanctify_v not_o only_o afore_o his_o circumcision_n but_o also_o afore_o he_o be_v bear_v the_o same_o may_v we_o say_v of_o jacob_n 24._o of_o jerome_n of_o saint_n paul_n and_o other_o like_a who_o god_n have_v sanctify_a unto_o himself_o even_o from_o the_o mother_n womb_n and_o if_o the_o choose_a as_o well_o the_o child_n as_o other_o that_o be_v among_o the_o heathen_a and_o paynim_n be_v save_v without_o the_o outward_a circumcision_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o nynivites_fw-la in_o nahaman_n in_o job_n and_o other_o like_a which_o have_v have_v a_o knowledge_n of_o god_n have_v always_o their_o refuge_n unto_o his_o grace_n wherefore_o shall_v the_o same_o privilege_n be_v deny_v unto_o those_o who_o he_o have_v not_o only_o choose_v by_o his_o eternal_a election_n which_o do_v pertain_v unto_o all_o his_o servant_n but_o also_o unto_o who_o he_o have_v give_v a_o sure_a and_o a_o infallible_a token_n and_o testimony_n of_o it_o by_o his_o outward_a sacrament_n if_o they_o have_v as_o reasonable_a let_v and_o excuse_n as_o those_o gentile_n and_o heathen_a may_v have_v for_o the_o first_o foundation_n of_o our_o election_n salvation_n be_v neither_o faith_n hope_v love_n baptism_n nor_o fear_v of_o god_n but_o only_o the_o election_n and_o predestination_n of_o god_n as_o s._n paul_n declare_v plain_o &_o large_o and._n s._n peter_n say_v elect_v accord_v to_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n the_o father_n unto_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n through_o obedience_n and_o sprinkel_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n grace_n and_o peace_n be_v multiply_v unto_o you_o in_o which_o we_o may_v see_v plain_o that_o the_o free_a election_n of_o god_n be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n chistes_n obedience_n the_o material_a cause_n our_o effectual_a call_n be_v the_o formal_a cause_n and_o and_o our_o sanctification_n be_v the_o final_a cause_n to_o be_v short_a we_o must_v beware_v that_o we_o put_v no_o such_o necessity_n in_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n that_o we_o shall_v judge_v or_o think_v that_o all_o other_o necessity_n must_v geve_v place_n unto_o it_o but_o contrariwise_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o many_o time_n the_o ministration_n of_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n 5._o defer_v and_o leave_v of_o because_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o man_n and_o of_o the_o impediment_n and_o let_v that_o have_v happen_v unto_o they_o which_o thing_n we_o may_v perfect_o understand_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o circumcision_n that_o differ_v among_o the_o israelite_n if_o we_o will_v consider_v the_o circumstance_n that_o be_v in_o it_o papist_n for_o when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n and_o must_v always_o be_v ready_a to_o remove_v their_o host_n and_o all_o their_o household_n at_o the_o time_n and_o hour_n that_o the_o lord_n shall_v command_v they_o they_o do_v well_o judge_v that_o god_n will_v not_o have_v they_o to_o be_v murderer_n of_o their_o own_o child_n who_o they_o can_v not_o have_v circumcise_v but_o that_o they_o must_v have_v be_v very_o sick_a and_o in_o jeopardy_n of_o death_n if_o they_o have_v not_o have_v time_n and_o place_n to_o see_v well_o unto_o they_o which_o thing_n we_o may_v see_v plain_o by_o they_o of_o sychem_n 34._o which_o be_v so_o sick_a after_o their_o circumcision_n that_o they_o altogether_o be_v not_o able_a to_o defend_v themselves_o against_o two_o of_o jacob_n son_n therefore_o moses_n do_v well_o consider_v that_o circumcision_n be_v make_v and_o ordain_v for_o man_n ●_o and_o not_o man_n for_o circumcision_n as_o it_o be_v write_v of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n even_o the_o like_a may_v we_o say_v of_o baptism_n which_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o lord_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o bloody_a circumcision_n for_o as_o by_o circumcision_n which_o be_v a_o cut_n of_o of_o the_o foreskin_n the_o child_n of_o the_o hebrew_n be_v bring_v unto_o god_n be_v seal_v up_o with_o the_o seal_n of_o his_o covenant_n and_o receive_v into_o his_o church_n to_o the_o great_a comfort_n and_o joy_n of_o the_o parent_n which_o be_v certify_v by_o the_o same_o that_o god_n be_v not_o only_o their_o god_n but_o also_o the_o god_n of_o their_o posterity_n and_o seed_n and_o yet_o if_o any_o thing_n have_v happen_v unto_o they_o afore_o that_o they_o can_v be_v circumcise_v they_o mistrust_v not_o but_o that_o god_n will_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o testament_n save_v they_o as_o we_o have_v already_o sufficient_o prove_v christ_n so_o by_o baptism_n the_o child_n of_o the_o christian_n be_v bring_v unto_o christ_n be_v seal_v up_o with_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o receive_v into_o his_o church_n as_o member_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o fellow_n heir_n with_o he_o of_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n which_o thing_n unto_o the_o faithful_a parent_n must_v be_v a_o heavenly_a comfort_n for_o by_o it_o they_o be_v certify_v and_o assure_v that_o their_o sin_n be_v not_o only_o wash_v away_o with_o
confess_v even_o the_o same_o that_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n who_o alone_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n do_v sanctify_v all_o man_n and_o even_o the_o very_a babe_n in_o their_o mother_n belly_n understand_v do_v there_o speak_v of_o the_o spiritual_a regeneration_n of_o man_n and_o of_o his_o new_a birth_n declare_v what_o be_v requisite_a and_o necessary_a for_o he_o for_o to_o be_v a_o christian_n that_o be_v to_o say_v how_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o forsake_v his_o first_o generation_n and_o birth_n which_o be_v altogether_o corrupt_v 3.5_o accurse_a and_o naught_o and_o that_o he_o be_v regenerate_v and_o bear_v again_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o incorruptible_a seed_n of_o his_o word_n so_o that_o he_o must_v be_v make_v a_o new_a creature_n bear_v the_o image_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 15._o the_o true_a heavenly_a adam_n as_o he_o do_v bear_v the_o image_n of_o the_o old_a adam_n 3._o and_o therefore_o he_o say_v except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v a_o new_a or_o from_o above_o he_o can_v see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o then_o afterwards_o he_o do_v expound_v by_o a_o other_o sentence_n follow_v the_o self_n same_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v say_v before_o for_o to_o be_v bear_v a_o new_a or_o from_o above_o and_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v phrase_n scripture_n and_o manner_n of_o speak_n which_o do_v signify_v all_o one_o thing_n so_o that_o those_o two_o sentence_n of_o christ_n do_v differ_v in_o nothing_o save_v only_o that_o the_o last_o do_v expound_v the_o first_o be_v somewhat_o more_o ample_a and_o copious_a for_o sith_o that_o our_o first_o generation_n and_o birth_n be_v carnal_a it_o behove_v that_o the_o second_o be_v spiritual_a 15._o sith_o that_o the_o first_o man_n be_v of_o the_o earth_n be_v earthy_a it_o be_v requisite_a and_o necessary_a that_o the_o second_o which_o be_v from_o heaven_n be_v heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a but_o this_o generation_n and_o change_n can_v not_o be_v do_v but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n 3._o be_v spirit_n and_o therefore_o our_o saviour_n christ_n go_v about_o to_o expound_v the_o same_o unto_o nicodemus_n that_o he_o have_v say_v before_o except_v a_o man_n be_v bear_v a_o new_a or_o from_o above_o he_o can_v see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n he_o do_v say_v afterwards_o except_o that_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v of_o water_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n he_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n objection_n because_o that_o the_o spirit_n the_o author_n of_o this_o generation_n be_v give_v from_o above_o who_o work_v this_o new_a birth_n in_o we_o which_o be_v altogether_o heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a but_o peradventure_o they_o will_v say_v what_o need_v he_o to_o add_v water_n be_v it_o not_o enough_o to_o name_v the_o spirit_n unto_o who_o i_o answer_v wherefore_o do_v john_n baptist_n say_v answer_n speak_v of_o the_o office_n and_o ministry_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o he_o shall_v baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 3._o and_o with_o fire_n what_o need_n have_v he_o sith_o that_o he_o have_v name_v the_o spirit_n to_o make_v any_o mention_n of_o fire_n shall_v it_o therefore_o be_v necessary_a to_o appoint_v a_o baptism_n of_o fire_n 2._o as_o they_o say_v that_o some_o folk_n have_v do_v and_o yet_o do_v at_o this_o present_a day_n saint_n augustine_n do_v testify_v that_o the_o heretic_n seleucus_n and_o hermias_n who_o be_v galatian_n do_v not_o baptize_v with_o water_n he_o tell_v not_o wherewith_o they_o do_v baptize_v but_o other_o writer_n say_v that_o they_o do_v baptize_v with_o fire_n we_o read_v likewise_o 2._o that_o the_o jacobite_n do_v use_v fire_n in_o the_o circumcision_n of_o their_o child_n wherewith_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o mark_v they_o either_o in_o the_o forehead_n or_o in_o the_o cheek_n they_o say_v also_o that_o the_o indian_n ethiopian_n and_o persian_n which_o count_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n do_v yet_o at_o this_o present_a time_n use_v fire_n in_o steed_n of_o water_n in_o their_o baptism_n which_o error_n without_o all_o doubt_n do_v come_v of_o the_o false_a intelligence_n and_o understanding_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n word_n for_o they_o do_v not_o perceive_v nor_o understand_v that_o fire_n be_v take_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o also_o of_o john_n baptist_n by_o a_o figurative_a manner_n of_o speak_v for_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n that_o so_o they_o may_v the_o more_o lively_o express_v the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n fire_n for_o as_o the_o fire_n be_v pure_a and_o clean_a and_o can_v suffer_v no_o uncleanness_n so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v pourge_v and_o cleanse_v and_o lighten_v the_o conscience_n set_v they_o on_o fire_n with_o the_o love_n of_o god._n 2._o for_o the_o which_o cause_n he_o be_v send_v unto_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o fiery_a tongue_n which_o thing_n be_v both_o foresee_v &_o forspeak_v of_o john_n baptist_n and_o also_o mean_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n if_o we_o do_v not_o stick_v to_o take_v fire_n in_o that_o place_n for_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n and_o for_o a_o more_o ample_a exposition_n and_o set_v forth_o of_o his_o nature_n and_o property_n wherefore_o shall_v we_o stick_v to_o take_v water_n here_o in_o this_o place_n for_o the_o same_o self_n spirit_n consider_v the_o conformity_n agreement_n and_o affinity_n that_o the_o water_n have_v with_o the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yea_o all_o thing_n be_v well_o consider_v it_o stand_v with_o more_o reason_n than_o the_o other_o do_v for_o saint_n john_n speak_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n first_o first_o and_o then_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o fire_n therefore_o a_o man_n may_v think_v that_o either_o he_o do_v understand_v two_o several_a thing_n or_o that_o he_o do_v expound_v one_o thing_n that_o be_v plain_a of_o itself_o by_o a_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v obscure_a and_o dark_a first_o but_o in_o this_o place_n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v put_v the_o water_n first_o and_o then_o afterward_o as_o though_o he_o will_v expound_v unto_o we_o his_o figurative_a manner_n of_o speak_v and_o geve_v unto_o it_o a_o great_a light_n he_o do_v declare_v what_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o understand_v by_o the_o same_o water_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o holy_a spirit_n unto_o who_o he_o give_v this_o name_n for_o many_o cause_n scripture_n first_o because_o that_o as_o the_o fire_n be_v a_o element_n exceed_v pure_a and_o clean_a and_o so_o necessary_a for_o man_n life_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o man_n may_v forgo_v it_o so_o the_o water_n be_v very_o needful_a be_v of_o a_o very_a clear_a pure_a and_o clean_a nature_n and_o very_o meet_v for_o to_o represent_v and_o signify_v the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o as_o the_o water_n do_v renew_v the_o earth_n make_v it_o fertile_a water_n cause_v it_o to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n and_o do_v wash_v the_o filthiness_n of_o the_o body_n so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v wash_v purify_v refresh_v and_o water_v the_o heart_n and_o conscience_n of_o man_n comfort_v they_o 1_n and_o also_o make_v they_o to_o bring_v forth_o pleasant_a fruit_n and_o acceptable_a to_o god._n and_o as_o water_n do_v put_v out_o fire_n and_o quench_v the_o thirst_n so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v quench_v the_o fire_n of_o the_o evil_a concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n 36._o he_o do_v also_o quench_v the_o thirst_n of_o the_o poor_a trouble_a soul_n satisfy_v they_o for_o evermore_o second_o he_o will_v by_o this_o manner_n of_o speak_v make_v we_o to_o understand_v those_o ceremony_n wash_n and_o purifiynge_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o likewise_o those_o prophecy_n whereby_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v promise_v and_o special_o by_o isaiah_n and_o ezechiell_n unto_o which_o prophecy_n he_o have_v now_o a_o respect_n therefore_o he_o will_v declare_v unto_o we_o that_o those_o water_n that_o be_v promise_v of_o god_n do_v signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o abundant_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n which_o shall_v be_v pour_v upon_o all_o flesh_n as_o a_o stream_n or_o flood_n of_o water_n that_o do_v run_v down_o and_o overflow_v all_o the_o whole_a earth_n which_o thing_n s._n peter_n do_v testify_v to_o have_v be_v fulfil_v both_o in_o himself_o and_o in_o all_o the_o other_o disciple_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n 2._o in_o the_o feast_n of_o whitsuntide_n accord_v to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o joel_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n 4._o both_o in_o this_o place_n and_o when_o he_o
do_v talk_v with_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n and_o also_o when_o he_o do_v bid_v they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o temple_n 7._o that_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o drink_v those_o lively_a water_n do_v use_v the_o same_o manner_n of_o speak_n for_o to_o declare_v unto_o we_o also_o to_o what_o end_n he_o do_v institute_v the_o sign_n of_o water_n in_o baptism_n and_o that_o this_o be_v true_a that_o i_o say_v i_o do_v take_v john_n for_o my_o witness_n who_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o his_o master_n do_v say_v that_o by_o those_o water_n he_o do_v understand_v the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o they_o that_o believe_v shall_v receive_v three_o by_o this_o figurative_a manner_n of_o speak_v he_o do_v instruct_v and_o teach_v we_o what_o a_o christian_a man_n that_o be_v regenerate_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n aught_o to_o be_v compare_v the_o water_n and_o the_o wind_n which_o be_v creature_n most_o fine_a clear_a and_o pure_a with_o the_o earth_n which_o be_v a_o element_n more_o gross_a more_o heavy_a and_o more_o material_a these_o word_n than_o do_v signify_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o in_o steed_n of_o that_o gross_a earthy_a and_o corruptible_a man_n he_o must_v be_v renew_v and_o make_v altogether_o a_o new_a creature_n heavenly_a spiritual_a and_o perfect_a differ_v asmuch_o from_o he_o that_o be_v earthy_a and_o corruptible_a as_o the_o water_n and_o wind_n do_v differ_v from_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o this_o must_v be_v do_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v that_o true_a water_n that_o work_v this_o purifi_a in_o us._n but_o let_v we_o grant_v unto_o they_o that_o this_o text_n ought_v in_o deed_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o visible_a baptism_n what_o shall_v they_o get_v by_o it_o do_v not_o the_o master_n of_o sentence_n himself_o have_v all_o question_n autem_fw-la that_o can_v be_v move_v upon_o this_o text_n affirm_v that_o this_o place_n ought_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o they_o that_o can_v be_v baptize_v and_o do_v not_o esteem_v it_o the_o doctor_n themselves_o perceave_v what_o absurdity_n &_o inconvenience_n shall_v follow_v if_o they_o will_v understand_v this_o text_n bapti_fw-la of_o the_o outward_a baptism_n only_o &_o go_v to_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o letter_n be_v fain_o to_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v three_o manner_n of_o baptism_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o baptism_n of_o water_n the_o baptism_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o the_o baptism_n of_o blood_n whereby_o they_o do_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v some_o other_o baptism_n beside_o the_o baptism_n of_o water_n whereby_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v there_o be_v the_o baptism_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o faith_n which_o can_v be_v without_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o water_n whereupon_o the_o master_n of_o sentence_n do_v allege_v s._n augustine_n bapti_fw-la say_v thou_o do_v ask_v which_o be_v great_a faith_n or_o the_o water_n i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o thou_o will_v answer_v faith_n if_o that_o then_o which_o be_v less_o can_v sanctify_v how_o much_o more_o shall_v that_o which_o be_v great_a be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v faith_n of_o the_o which_o christ_n say_v 11._o he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o though_o he_o be_v dead_a yet_o shall_v he_o live_v objection_n here_o again_o will_v they_o allege_v saint_n augustine_n against_o i_o 1._o who_o write_v on_o this_o manner_n we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o any_o cathechumene_n have_v life_n everlasting_a though_o he_o die_v in_o good_a work_n except_o he_o be_v baptize_v or_o suffer_v martyrdom_n again_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n of_o salvation_n but_o for_o they_o that_o be_v baptize_v i_o think_v they_o be_v not_o so_o ignorant_a but_o that_o they_o know_v what_o their_o own_o doctor_n be_v wont_a to_o answer_v to_o this_o place_n among_o who_o one_o holcot_n by_o name_n do_v open_o withstand_v saint_n augustine_n say_v that_o his_o exception_n be_v not_o sufficient_a and_o that_o a_o man_n that_o know_v and_o believe_v in_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n can_v be_v save_v by_o some_o other_o mean_v then_o by_o martyrdom_n though_o he_o die_v without_o baptism_n yea_o moreover_o he_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v believe_v perfect_o that_o he_o be_v baptize_v although_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o he_o shall_v be_v out_o of_o the_o danger_n of_o damnation_n and_o say_v plain_o that_o this_o faith_n shall_v serve_v he_o unto_o salvation_n though_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o a_o falsehood_n therefore_o the_o master_n of_o sentence_n answer_v to_o such_o objection_n au●●in_n say_v that_o these_o word_n of_o saint_n augustine_n must_v be_v understand_v accord_v to_o the_o declaration_n that_o he_o give_v in_o other_o place_n where_o he_o do_v entreat_v more_o large_o of_o this_o matter_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v write_v that_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o those_o that_o have_v time_n to_o make_v themselves_o to_o be_v baptize_v and_o do_v it_o not_o for_o if_o any_o man_n have_v faith_n and_o charity_n 8._o will_v be_v baptize_v and_o can_v not_o be_v prevent_v by_o some_o necessity_n the_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o almighty_a god_n do_v recompense_n that_o which_o do_v lack_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o when_o he_o be_v able_a to_o pay_v if_o he_o pay_v not_o he_o remain_v bind_v still_o but_o if_o he_o can_v and_o yet_o have_v a_o good_a will_n to_o do_v it_o god_n who_o do_v not_o bind_v his_o power_n unto_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v not_o impute_v it_o unto_o he_o i_o have_v allege_v even_o the_o very_a word_n as_o they_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o master_n of_o sentence_n who_o do_v prove_v also_o by_o saint_n augustine_n 88_o that_o the_o invisible_a sanctifi_a have_v be_v in_o some_o and_o have_v profit_v they_o without_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n say_v on_o this_o wise_a and_o manner_n the_o visible_a sanctify_v which_o be_v do_v and_o wrought_v by_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n may_v be_v without_o the_o invisible_a but_o it_o profit_v nothing_o 4._o yet_o we_o must_v not_o therefore_o contemn_v and_o despise_v the_o visible_a sacrament_n for_o the_o despiser_n and_o contemner_n of_o it_o can_v not_o be_v sanctify_v invisible_o and_o as_o for_o master_n holtcot_n although_o he_o do_v allow_v that_o which_o the_o other_o have_v write_v of_o the_o baptism_n of_o blood_n yet_o do_v he_o sufficient_o declare_v that_o he_o that_o be_v unbaptized_a do_v shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o baptize_v by_o that_o blood_n that_o he_o have_v shed_v but_o that_o the_o church_n do_v hold_v he_o for_o baptize_v because_o that_o he_o have_v sufficient_o declare_v that_o he_o do_v not_o despise_v baptism_n but_o that_o he_o will_v glad_o have_v receive_v it_o if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a for_o he_o sith_o that_o he_o have_v show_v such_o a_o faith_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n there_o be_v yet_o a_o place_n objection_n that_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o allege_v out_o of_o a_o certain_a book_n that_o go_v under_o the_o title_n and_o name_n of_o saint_n augustine_n pet_n the_o word_n be_v these_o hold_v this_o for_o a_o surety_n and_o doubt_v in_o no_o wise_a of_o it_o that_o not_o only_o they_o that_o do_v already_o use_v reason_n or_o be_v of_o year_n of_o discretion_n but_o also_o the_o little_a infant_n that_o begin_v to_o live_v in_o their_o mother_n womb_n and_o die_v there_o with_o out_o the_o sacrament_n of_o holy_a baptism_n which_o be_v give_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o they_o that_o without_o it_o pass_v forth_o of_o this_o world_n after_o that_o they_o be_v bear_v shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a fire_n for_o although_o they_o have_v no_o actual_a sin_n of_o their_o own_o yet_o have_v they_o draw_v by_o their_o conception_n and_o birth_n the_o damnation_n of_o original_a sin_n limb_n let_v they_o turn_v themselves_o which_o way_n soever_o they_o listen_v and_o yet_o think_v to_o maintain_v and_o uphold_v the_o limb_n of_o the_o little_a infant_n they_o do_v utter_o overthrow_v it_o and_o that_o unaware_o to_o themselves_o for_o whosoever_o be_v author_n of_o this_o book_n that_o they_o do_v father_n upon_o saint_n augustine_n the_o same_o that_o they_o do_v allege_v and_o bring_v out_o of_o it_o do_v utter_o cast_v they_o in_o their_o own_o talk_n for_o if_o these_o word_n be_v true_a after_o the_o sense_n that_o they_o geve_v unto_o they_o the_o little_a infant_n die_v without_o baptism_n shall_v not_o only_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o fruition_n of_o god_n glory_n and_o of_o all_o other_o joy_n of_o heaven_n but_o also_o
must_v we_o be_v in_o the_o resurrection_n these_o word_n shall_v the_o easy_o be_v understand_v if_o we_o will_v consider_v and_o mark_v ourselves_o that_o the_o whole_a life_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n ought_v to_o serve_v we_o in_o steed_n of_o a_o allegory_n whereby_o we_o shall_v make_v ourselves_o conformable_a unto_o he_o spiritual_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v true_o and_o real_o or_o in_o very_a deed_n fulfil_v in_o his_o body_n and_o can_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v fulfil_v in_o we_o as_o for_o a_o example_n our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n he_o have_v be_v crucify_v and_o put_v to_o death_n he_o do_v rise_v again_o the_o third_o day_n and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n all_o those_o thing_n can_v be_v perform_v nor_o fulfil_v in_o our_o body_n as_o they_o be_v in_o he_o but_o let_v we_o endeavour_n ourselves_o that_o our_o spirit_n or_o inward_a man_n may_v be_v fashion_v and_o make_v conformable_a unto_o he_o in_o these_o thing_n our_o body_n be_v conceive_v and_o bear_v in_o sin_n 51._o not_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o in_o the_o womb_n of_o a_o virgin_n as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v but_o they_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o carnal_a copulation_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n 14._o and_o of_o corruptible_a seed_n that_o we_o may_v therefore_o be_v conformable_a unto_o he_o in_o this_o point_n birth_n let_v we_o come_v unto_o his_o true_a church_n and_o believe_v his_o gospel_n and_o when_o we_o be_v in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v both_o our_o mother_n and_o a_o chaste_a virgin_n 4._o we_o shall_v be_v conceive_v and_o beget_v in_o it_o by_o the_o uncorruptible_a seed_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n and_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o shall_v be_v bear_v again_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o make_v new_a creature_n we_o shall_v put_v of_o the_o old_a man_n and_o put_v one_o the_o new_a bear_v the_o image_n of_o the_o new_a adam_n 15._o which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n as_o we_o have_v bear_v the_o image_n of_o the_o old_a adam_n and_o of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n after_o that_o we_o be_v thus_o conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 5._o and_o bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o spouse_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o residue_n of_o our_o life_n must_v also_o be_v conformable_a unto_o the_o life_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o our_o spiritual_a conception_n and_o birth_n be_v we_o be_v not_o crucify_v and_o put_v to_o death_n as_o he_o be_v but_o we_o learn_v of_o he_o to_o bear_v the_o cross_n with_o he_o and_o to_o be_v crucify_v unto_o the_o world_n world_n that_o the_o world_n may_v be_v crucify_v unto_o we_o as_o saint_n paul_n write_v of_o himself_o but_o to_o be_v crucify_v and_o dead_a unto_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v crucify_v and_o dead_a unto_o sin_n and_o to_o be_v crucify_v and_o dead_a unto_o sin_n be_v to_o forsake_v sin_n to_o have_v no_o more_o acquaintance_n with_o it_o sin_n and_o to_o be_v no_o more_o a_o servant_n unto_o it_o than_o the_o dead_a be_v wont_a to_o serve_v the_o live_n for_o as_o the_o dead_a have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v with_o the_o live_n but_o be_v separate_v from_o they_o so_o they_o be_v dead_a unto_o the_o world_n that_o have_v forsake_v it_o for_o to_o serve_v the_o live_n god_n and_o that_o will_v not_o fashion_n themselves_o after_o it_o 4._o nor_o walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o concupiscence_n of_o it_o now_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o they_o that_o be_v thus_o dead_a unto_o the_o world_n shall_v not_o live_v unto_o god_n and_o that_o the_o world_n shall_v not_o be_v dead_a unto_o they_o as_o contrariwise_o they_o that_o live_v unto_o the_o world_n and_o the_o world_n unto_o they_o they_o be_v dead_a unto_o god_o as_o saint_n paul_n have_v write_v of_o the_o widow_n that_o live_v in_o pleasure_n 3._o say_v that_o widow_n that_o live_v in_o pleasure_n be_v dead_a even_o yet_o alive_a because_o she_o live_v unto_o the_o world_n and_o be_v dead_a unto_o god_n that_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o young_a man_n that_o will_v go_v and_o bury_v his_o father_n let_v the_o dead_a bury_v their_o dead_a 8._o follow_v thou_o i_o when_o we_o die_v then_o unto_o the_o world_n we_o rise_v again_o unto_o god._n again_o we_o practise_v spiritual_o in_o we_o the_o example_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n when_o we_o do_v mortify_v our_o earthy_a member_n when_o we_o offer_v our_o body_n a_o lively_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n 12._o when_o we_o do_v slay_v with_o the_o sword_n of_o god_n word_n and_o also_o burn_v with_o the_o fire_n of_o his_o spirit_n 3._o our_o concupiscence_n and_o carnal_a affection_n which_o be_v the_o brute_n beast_n that_o we_o sacrifice_n unto_o god_n that_o the_o offering_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o body_n may_v be_v reasonable_a 3_n therefore_o we_o die_v with_o our_o saviour_n christ_n when_o we_o do_v kill_v and_o mortify_v our_o old_a adam_n we_o do_v also_o rise_v again_o with_o he_o when_o we_o do_v put_v on_o jesus_n christ_n and_o be_v apparel_v with_o he_o when_o we_o serve_v to_o righteousness_n and_o despise_v this_o world_n with_o all_o the_o pomp_n and_o pride_n thereof_o have_v our_o mind_n and_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n where_o we_o do_v seek_v for_o our_o ●aviour_n jesus_n christ_n fit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o apostle_n and_o special_o saint_n paul_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o we_o ought_v after_o this_o manner_n to_o apply_v and_o set_v before_o we_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n of_o a_o lively_a image_n and_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a and_o spiritual_a life_n baptism_n and_o do_v declare_v unto_o we_o that_o baptism_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n for_o the_o water_n that_o be_v pour_v upon_o we_o in_o baptism_n it_o be_v first_o and_o foremost_a unto_o we_o a_o certificate_n sign_n token_n and_o seal_v of_o the_o free_a remission_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n baptism_n who_o be_v the_o lively_a water_n that_o wash_v and_o cleanse_v our_o conscience_n from_o sin_n as_o the_o visible_a water_n do_v wash_v away_o the_o filthiness_n of_o the_o body_n moreover_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o repentance_n which_o teach_v we_o that_o as_o the_o water_n do_v come_v upon_o we_o as_o it_o be_v for_o to_o cover_v and_o overwhelm_v we_o so_o it_o behove_v that_o our_o old_a man_n of_o sin_n be_v drown_v 6._o as_o pharaoh_n and_o the_o egyptian_n be_v drown_v in_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o that_o we_o must_v be_v bury_v with_o our_o saviour_n christ_n but_o in_o this_o that_o the_o water_n do_v not_o remain_v still_o upon_o our_o head_n nor_o yet_o drown_v we_o it_o be_v thereby_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o repentance_n and_o mortify_v that_o god_n do_v require_v of_o we_o be_v not_o unto_o death_n 14._o but_o unto_o life_n so_o that_o by_o death_n he_o make_v we_o to_o enter_v into_o life_n as_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n go_v through_o the_o red_a sea_n be_v bring_v out_o of_o servitude_n and_o boundage_n in_o to_o a_o goodly_a liberty_n 24._o and_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v by_o his_o death_n and_o cross_n enter_v into_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n and_o so_o the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v not_o only_o represent_v unto_o we_o in_o our_o baptism_n we_o be_v not_o only_o by_o it_o graft_v in_o his_o testament_n and_o receive_v into_o his_o church_n but_o also_o we_o have_v there_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o death_n bury_v and_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o of_o our_o death_n bury_v and_o resurrection_n with_o he_o us._n we_o have_v also_o there_o repentance_n and_o of_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o also_o a_o lively_a image_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a christian_n life_n preach_v unto_o us._n but_o to_o come_v again_o to_o our_o purpose_n after_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v by_o many_o token_n and_o sign_n declare_v that_o he_o be_v true_o rise_v again_o for_o he_o be_v by_o the_o space_n of_o xl_o day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n 1._o always_o conversant_a with_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n 20._o eat_v and_o drink_n with_o they_o and_o bid_v they_o to_o handle_v and_o feel_v his_o body_n and_o for_o a_o further_a proof_n or_o trial_n to_o put_v their_o finger_n into_o his_o wound_n that_o they_o may_v be_v in_o no_o doubt_n 1._o but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o same_o self_n
body_n that_o he_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v in_o ¶_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n ¶_o of_o christ_n ascension_n into_o heaven_n and_o how_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n etc_n etc_n and_o after_o what_o manner_n he_o be_v here_o amongst_o us._n and_o he_o do_v most_o triumphant_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n 1._o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n where_o a_o cloud_n receive_v he_o up_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n the_o angel_n testify_v that_o as_o he_o be_v take_v up_o from_o we_o into_o heaven_n so_o he_o shall_v be_v see_v come_v again_o at_o the_o dreadful_a day_n of_o judgement_n when_o he_o shall_v be_v accompany_v with_o his_o holy_a angel_n come_v down_o to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o mean_a season_n we_o must_v not_o think_v though_o he_o have_v take_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o his_o body_n away_o from_o we_o that_o therefore_o he_o have_v forsake_v we_o or_o that_o he_o do_v not_o assist_v aid_n and_o help_v his_o choose_a and_o elect_a as_o long_o as_o they_o be_v pilgrim_n and_o stranger_n here_o in_o the_o earth_n for_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n ▪_o he_o be_v always_o with_o we_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n which_o thing_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o his_o godly_a power_n 16._o and_o invisible_a grace_n so_o do_v saint_n augustine_n say_v secundum_fw-la presentiam_fw-la maiestatis_fw-la semper_fw-la habomus_fw-la christum_fw-la 50._o accord_v to_o the_o presence_n or_o as_o he_o be_v god_n we_o have_v always_o christ_n with_o we_o again_o he_o say_v in_o the_o same_o place_n nam_fw-la secundum_fw-la maiestatem_fw-la svam_fw-la secundum_fw-la providentiam_fw-la secundum_fw-la ineffabilem_fw-la et_fw-la invisibilem_fw-la gratiam_fw-la ibidem_fw-la impletur_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la e●_n dictum_fw-la est_fw-la ecce_fw-la ego_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la sum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la diebus_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la consummationem_fw-la seculi_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o english_a as_o concern_v his_o divine_a majesty_n his_o providence_n his_o inestimable_a and_o invisible_a grace_n these_o word_n be_v fulfil_v that_o be_v speak_v by_o he_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o the_o day_n of_o your_o life_n unto_o the_o world_n end_n for_o as_o touch_v his_o humanity_n or_o manhood_n he_o be_v absent_a from_o we_o and_o will_v be_v to_o the_o world_n end_n until_o he_o shall_v be_v see_v visible_o of_o all_o flesh_n to_o come_v again_o thereto_o accord_v s._n augustine_n 112.50_o say_v secundum_fw-la presentiam_fw-la carnis_fw-la recte_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la discipulis_fw-la sui●_n i_o autem_fw-la non_fw-la semper_fw-la habebitis_fw-la accord_v to_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o flesh_n or_o body_n it_o be_v right_o and_o true_o say_v unto_o his_o disciple_n i_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v always_o for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o as_o he_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n so_o touch_v his_o manhood_n or_o humanity_n that_o he_o take_v in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n ▪_o he_o be_v in_o all_o thing_n like_v unto_o we_o sin_n only_o be_v except_v as_o the_o holy_a apostle_n do_v write_v 2._o say_v he_o take_v not_o on_o he_o angel_n but_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n that_o in_o all_o thing_n he_o may_v be_v like_a unto_o his_o brethren_n as_o than_o he_o do_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n in_o the_o same_o body_n 4._o &_o be_v subject_a to_o all_o manner_n of_o infirmity_n that_o we_o his_o brethren_n be_v subject_a unto_o sin_n always_o be_v except_v therefore_o barnarde_n very_o pretty_o say_v _o christ_n love_v we_o dulcior_fw-la sapientior_fw-la fortior_fw-la sweet_o in_o that_o he_o take_v our_o flesh_n upon_o he_o wise_o in_o that_o he_o have_v no_o sin_n by_o take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o strong_o in_o that_o he_o vanquish_v satan_n death_n and_o sin_n so_o have_v fulfil_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o take_v it_o for_o he_o do_v carry_v it_o up_o into_o heaven_n and_o there_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o same_o human_a body_n be_v now_o glorify_v and_o immortal_a on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a 10.1_o which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o that_o he_o be_v exalt_v above_o the_o heaven_n have_v receive_v a_o full_a authority_n and_o power_n over_o all_o creature_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o reign_v there_o in_o glory_n with_o the_o father_n till_o his_o enemy_n be_v make_v his_o footstool_n for_o when_o we_o hear_v that_o christ_n be_v set_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n we_o must_v put_v all_o gross_a imagination_n out_o of_o our_o mind_n we_o must_v beware_v that_o we_o imagine_v not_o that_o god_n the_o father_n be_v set_v down_o as_o a_o earthly_a king_n in_o some_o visible_a and_o material_a seat_n and_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v set_v down_o by_o he_o in_o another_o simbo_n as_o his_o son_n or_o one_o of_o his_o prince_n and_o lord_n again_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o god_n the_o father_n in_o his_o divine_a essence_n similitude_n have_v a_o right_a hand_n and_o a_o left_a hand_n with_o other_o human_a limb_n as_o we_o see_v mortal_a man_n to_o have_v for_o that_o be_v to_o fall_v into_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o antropomorphite_n but_o rather_o we_o must_v mark_v that_o it_o be_v speak_v by_o a_o similitude_n be_v borrow_v of_o prince_n and_o king_n of_o the_o world_n for_o as_o a_o king_n do_v common_o cause_v that_o man_n to_o sit_v by_o he_o and_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n who_o he_o will_v most_o honour_n and_o unto_o who_o he_o will_v geve_v most_o authority_n and_o power_n so_o we_o do_v understand_v by_o these_o word_n 3._o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v exalt_v above_o all_o creature_n and_o that_o he_o have_v power_n give_v unto_o he_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o that_o he_o reign_v with_o the_o father_n have_v equal_a power_n with_o he_o 26._o or_o by_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n we_o may_v right_v well_o understand_v with_o saint_n augustine_n the_o place_n of_o felicity_n and_o joy_n where_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v reign_v now_o in_o glory_n with_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o with_o all_o the_o bless_a spirit_n and_o soul_n of_o the_o choose_a and_o elect_a of_o god_n 25._o as_o contrariwise_o by_o his_o left_a hand_n the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o reprobate_n be_v understand_v and_o signify_v unto_o us._n 4._o again_o it_o be_v not_o know_v to_o they_o that_o read_v the_o scripture_n that_o to_o sit_v be_v many_o time_n take_v for_o to_o be_v in_o quiet_a peace_n and_o rest_n as_o when_o moses_n say_v to_o the_o child_n of_o gad_n and_o of_o reuben_n shall_v your_o brethren_n go_v forth_o unto_o the_o war_n and_o you_o sit_v here_o again_o in_o the_o prophet_n every_o man_n shall_v sit_v under_o his_o fig_n tree_n when_o we_o say_v then_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v set_v down_o we_o do_v understand_v that_o he_o be_v after_o the_o painful_a labour_n of_o this_o life_n and_o the_o woeful_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n enter_v into_o a_o joyful_a and_o quiet_a rest_n where_o he_o shall_v be_v touch_v his_o humanity_n and_o manhood_n as_o lord_n and_o head_n ruler_n of_o all_o creature_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o earth_n until_o the_o time_n that_o all_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o his_o holy_a prophet_n since_o the_o world_n begin_v 1._o be_v restore_v again_o as_o the_o holy_a apostle_n saint_n peter_n do_v testify_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o act_n 3._o for_o a_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o whole_a matter_n and_o also_o that_o the_o ignorant_a and_o simple_a person_n sophistry_n may_v the_o better_o avoid_v the_o subtle_a trick_n of_o the_o devil_n sophistry_n which_o be_v wont_v to_o dasill_n the_o eye_n of_o the_o unlearned_a with_o this_o &_o like_a argument_n the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n be_v take_v for_o his_o almighty_a power_n but_o his_o almighty_a power_n be_v &_o can_v be_v every_o where_o ergo_fw-la sith_o that_o christ_n touch_v his_o manhood_n way_n be_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o humanity_n or_o manhood_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v every_o where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v and_o mark_v that_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n be_v take_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o by_o it_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n be_v understand_v as_o when_o moses_n do_v say_v in_o his_o canticle_n 15._o thy_o hand_n lord_n be_v glorious_a thine_o hand_n have_v all_o too_o dash_v the_o enemy_n and_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 5._o saint_n peter_n say_v he_o have_v god_n lift_v up_o with_o his_o right_a hand_n in_o these_o place_n and_o such_o like_a the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n be_v take_v for_o his_o almighty_a power_n wherewith_o he_o
i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n can_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o natural_a presence_n of_o his_o flesh_n but_o of_o his_o divinity_n and_o godhead_n only_o ¶_o the_o xiij_o chapter_n ¶_o christ_n humane_a body_n can_v be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n at_o once_o ▪_o and_o no●_n in_o many_o and_o diverse_a place_n before_o now_o will_v i_o come_v to_o their_o gay_a paint_a reason_n whereby_o they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o whersoever_o the_o divinity_n and_o godhead_n of_o christ_n be_v ▪_o there_o must_v his_o manhood_n be_v also_o because_o that_o they_o be_v so_o joint_o join_v together_o once_o that_o they_o can_v be_v separate_v one_o from_o another_o but_o i_o intend_v god_n willing_a t●_n prove_v now_o ●oth_o by_o natural_a reason_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o also_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o property_n and_o nature_n of_o those_o thing_n aesidentis_fw-la that_o be_v so_o joint_o join_v together_o that_o the_o one_o can_v not_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o other_o that_o wheresoever_o the_o one_o be_v there_o the_o other_o must_v be_v also_o for_o first_o and_o foremost_a the_o body_n of_o the_o son_n and_o light_n of_o it_o be_v so_o joint_o join_v together_o that_o the_o one_o can_v be_v separate●_n from_o the_o other_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o whersoever_o the_o light_n of_o the_o son_n be_v there_o the_o body_n of_o the_o son_n must_v be_v also_o similitude_n and_o hereupon_o may_v i_o gather_v a_o go●●y_a similitude_n 〈◊〉_d y●méete_a for_o our_o purpose_n for_o as_o the_o son_n 〈…〉_o in_o the_o ●lement_n 3._o according_a to_o the_o order_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v among_o his_o creature_n do_v with_o his_o light_n refresh_v comfort_n quicken_v and_o vivify_v all_o thing_n here_o upon_o the_o earth_n so_o our_o saviour_n christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v the_o true_a son_n of_o righteousness_n be_v still_o until_o the_o time_n that_o god_o have_v appoint_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n touch_v his_o manhood_n that_o be_v to_o say_v above_o in_o heaven_n in_o the_o place_n of_o beatitude_n felicity_n and_o joy_n reign_v there_o with_o the_o father_n in_o coequal_a glory_n and_o majesty_n do_v continual_o assist_v aid_n and_o comfort_v his_o church_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n be_v always_o present_a with_o his_o elect_v and_o choose_v by_o his_o divine_a majesty_n 50._o providence_n and_o invisible_a grace_n who_o he_o do_v not_o cease_v through_o his_o almighty_a power_n the_o spirit_n be_v the_o worker_n of_o it_o to_o feed_v still_o with_o the_o wholesome_a food_n of_o his_o most_o precious_a flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o yet_o as_o it_o be_v most_o noisome_a and_o hurtful_a unto_o all_o the_o whole_a earth_n if_o we_o have_v here_o below_o the_o body_n of_o the_o son_n so_o be_v it_o not_o expedient_a that_o the_o church_n and_o congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v have_v christ_n still_o present_a here_o touch_v his_o humanity_n and_o manhood_n 16._o for_o so_o say_v he_o himself_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o you_o that_o i_o go_v hence_o for_o unless_o i_o go_v away_o the_o comforter_n shall_v not_o come_v again_o eye_n they_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o sight_n of_o it_o be_v so_o ioyint_o and_o inseparable_o join_v together_o that_o as_o long_o as_o the_o eye_n be_v whole_a and_o sound_o the_o one_o can_v not_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o other_o will_v they_o say_v therefore_o that_o the_o eye_n be_v in_o all_o place_n mercy_n that_o the_o sight_n do_v reach_v too_o severity_n and_o mercy_n be_v in_o god_n so_o joint_o join_v together_o that_o the_o one_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o other_o and_o yet_o they_o that_o feel_v his_o severity_n do_v not_o feel_v his_o mercy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v who_o he_o do_v accord_v to_o his_o righteous_a judgement_n punish_v everlasting_o in_o hell_n fire_n they_o do_v he_o utter_o banish_v and_o put_v away_o from_o his_o bounteous_a goodness_n and_o mercy_n but_o now_o will_v i_o come_v to_o the_o scripture_n and_o word_n of_o god._n 3._o when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v talk_v with_o nicodemus_n where_o be_v he_o touch_v his_o humanity_n and_o manhood_n in_o heaven_n or_o in_o earth_n i_o be_o sure_a that_o they_o will_v not_o say_v that_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o yet_o he_o say_v no_o man_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n here_o do_v we_o manifest_o see_v that_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n be_v then_o in_o heaven_n and_o yet_o no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o his_o humanity_n and_o manhood_n be_v there_o for_o he_o do_v then_o in_o it_o talk_v with_o nicodemus_n here_o upon_o the_o earth_n again_o when_o lazarus_n be_v dead_a christ_n be_v then_o away_o from_o jury_n do_v say_v to_o his_o apostle_n lazarus_n be_v dead_a and_o i_o be_o glad_a for_o your_o sake_n that_o i_o be_v not_o there_o 11._o that_o you_o may_v believe_v christ_n at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o he_o speak_v these_o word_n be_v in_o his_o humanity_n or_o manhood_n conversant_a with_o his_o apostle_n out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o jury_n that_o be_v to_o say_v far_o from_o among_o the_o jew_n that_o seek_v his_o death_n and_o yet_o without_o all_o peradventure_o he_o be_v in_o his_o godhead_n present_a with_o lazarus_n when_o he_o depart_v when_o that_o marie_n magdalene_n come_v to_o the_o grave_n to_o embalm_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o the_o angel_n say_v unto_o they_o non_fw-la est_fw-la hîc_fw-la he_o be_v not_o here_o he_o be_v rise_v as_o he_o say_v come_v and_o see_v the_o place_n where_o the_o lord_n be_v lay_v and_o behold_v he_o go_v into_o galilée_n before_o you_o 28._o there_o you_o shall_v see_v he_o here_o be_v plain_o open_v that_o his_o human_a nature_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o at_o galilee_n and_o doubtless_o his_o divinity_n and_o godhead_n be_v both_o in_o the_o grave_n and_o at_o galilée_v too_o therefore_o that_o ancient_a father_n fulgentius_n say_v christ_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o 2._o be_v a_o local_a man_n of_o man_n that_o be_v to_o say_v touch_v his_o manhood_n that_o he_o take_v of_o man_n he_o be_v contain_v in_o place_n who_o be_v god_n incomprehensible_a of_o the_o father_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o touch_v his_o humanity_n or_o manhood_n be_v absent_a from_o heaven_n when_o he_o be_v in_o earth_n and_o leave_v the_o earth_n when_o he_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n but_o touch_v his_o incomprehensible_a and_o divine_a substance_n he_o be_v not_o absent_a from_o heaven_n when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n ▪_o nor_o forsake_v the_o earth_n when_o he_o go_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o that_o he_o may_v show_v unto_o his_o apostle_n that_o his_o humanity_n or_o manhood_n be_v local_a that_o be_v to_o say_v contain_v in_o place_n he_o do_v say_v i_o go_v unto_o my_o father_n and_o unto_o your_o father_n 20._o again_o when_o he_o have_v say_v lazarus_n be_v dead_a 11._o he_o do_v add_v by_o and_o by_o and_o i_o be_o glad_a for_o your_o sake_n that_o i_o be_v not_o there_o but_o declare_v the_o incomprehensibleness_n of_o his_o divinity_n or_o godhead_n he_o do_v say_v behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n 28._o how_o do_v he_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n but_o that_o because_o be_v the_o same_o he_o be_v local_a and_o true_a man_n and_o how_o be_v he_o always_o with_o his_o elect_a but_o that_o because_o be_v the_o same_o christ_n he_o be_v incomprehensible_a and_o true_a god_n whereunto_o saint_n augustine_n do_v agree_v 57_o say_v doubt_v not_o but_o that_o christ_n be_v man_n be_v there_o from_o whence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a hold_v faithful_o and_o bear_v in_o remembrance_n the_o christian_n confession_n how_o that_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o third_o day_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v come_v from_o none_o other_o place_n but_o from_o thence_o to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 1._o and_o that_o he_o shall_v so_o come_v the_o angelical_a voice_n testify_v the_o same_o as_o he_o be_v see_v to_o go_v up_o into_o heaven_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o same_o shape_n and_o substance_n unto_o the_o which_o he_o give_v immortality_n but_o he_o do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o touch_v his_o shape_n and_o substance_n he_o be_v every_o where_o for_o we_o must_v beware_v that_o we_o do_v not_o so_o defend_v the_o divinity_n of_o man_n that_o thereby_o we_o shall_v take_v away_o the_o
asmuch_o as_o we_o have_v soul_n fasten_v unto_o our_o body_n therefore_o god_n give_v we_o thing_n spiritual_a under_o thing_n visible_a saint_n augustine_n to_o put_v all_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o we_o eat_v not_o gross_o nor_o drink_v very_o or_o carnal_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o papist_n affirm_v 98._o say_v these_o word_n non_fw-la hoc_fw-la corpus_fw-la quod_fw-la videt●s_fw-la manducaturi_fw-la estis_fw-la &_o bibitur_v illud_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la quem_fw-la fusuri_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la i_o cruci●igent_a sacramentum_fw-la aliquod_fw-la vobis_fw-la commendavi_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n that_o you_o s●e_v i_o to_o have_v nor_o yet_o shall_v you_o drink_v that_o blood_n which_o they_o shall_v shed_v that_o crucify_v i_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n that_o i_o geve_v or_o deliver_v unto_o you_o therefore_o he_o ●aide_v in_o his_o trac●es_n upon_o john_n 26._o aliud_fw-la est_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la aliud_fw-la res_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la the_o sacrament_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v another_o wherefore_o he_o give_v this_o lesson_n to_o all_o say_v 22._o in_o sacramentis_fw-la videndum_fw-la est_fw-la no_o quid_fw-la sint_fw-la sed_fw-la quid_fw-la significent_fw-la in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o may_v not_o look_v what_o they_o be_v but_o what_o they_o do_v signify_v manducat_fw-la now_o all_o man_n may_v see_v how_o shameful_o the_o papist_n do_v belie_v we_o say_v and_o write_v that_o we_o do_v make_v of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o a_o bare_a figure_n and_o sign_n for_o this_o be_v our_o faith_n and_o belief_n that_o if_o a_o man_n do_v true_o examine_v himself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v ponder_v weigh_v and_o consider_v with_o his_o own_o mind_n whether_o he_o acknowledge_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o sinner_n or_o not_o himself_o and_o whether_o he_o have_v a_o inward_a grief_n and_o a_o unfeigned_a repentance_n or_o sorrow_n for_o his_o sin_n whether_o he_o have_v forgive_v from_o the_o bottom_n of_o his_o heart_n all_o his_o enemy_n and_o reconcile_v himself_o unto_o they_o that_o he_o have_v offend_v whether_o he_o be_v determine_v to_o restore_v again_o unto_o his_o neighbour_n all_o that_o he_o have_v take_v away_o from_o he_o wrongful_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o mean_n whether_o he_o be_v mind_v for_o the_o love_n that_o he_o bear_v unto_o god_n to_o live_v afterwards_o virtuous_o according_a to_o his_o holy_a commandment_n forsake_v sin_n and_o the_o world_n but_o above_o all_o thing_n whether_o he_o have_v a_o true_a faith_n in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o whether_o he_o believe_v steadfast_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v his_o only_a saviour_n repentance_n redeemer_n intercessor_n advocate_n and_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o he_o final_o whether_o he_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o only_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n forsake_v all_o other_o false_a and_o erroneous_a doctrine_n with_o all_o kind_n of_o devilish_a superstition_n and_o idolatry_n and_o so_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n our_o faith_n i_o say_v and_o belief_n be_v that_o such_o a_o man_n do_v feed_v most_o effectuous_o upon_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n our_o only_a saviour_n christ_n and_o yet_o it_o need_v not_o therefore_o that_o his_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n be_v real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o as_o in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o baptism_n if_o it_o be_v due_o minister_v and_o worthy_o take_v we_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o we_o be_v renew_a or_o make_v new_a creature_n we_o obtain_v free_a remission_n &_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o be_v apparel_v with_o christ_n who_o we_o do_v put_v on_o there_o and_o yet_o no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o the_o water_n be_v any_o of_o these_o thing_n or_o that_o it_o be_v turn_v into_o they_o so_o in_o the_o holy_a mystery_n when_o we_o come_v worthy_o unto_o they_o we_o be_v most_o wholesome_o feed_v with_o the_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n yet_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v do_v unless_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n or_o except_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v there_o real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n we_o may_v most_o just_o be_v liken_v unto_o the_o jewish_a ruler_n and_o governor_n which_o think_v that_o except_o christ_n shall_v come_v in_o his_o own_o person_n 4._o his_o son_n can_v not_o be_v heal_v for_o christ_n our_o saviour_n be_v able_a by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o holy_a institution_n and_o by_o the_o mighty_a work_n of_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n to_o do_v all_o these_o thing_n as_o he_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n 3._o and_o for_o the_o objection_n that_o some_o make_v out_o of_o chrisostome_n where_o he_o say_v objection_n do_v thou_o see_v bread_n do_v thou_o see_v wine_n do_v they_o avoid_v beneath_o as_o other_o meat_n do_v god_n forbid_v think_v not_o so_o for_o as_o wax_v if_o it_o be_v put_v into_o the_o fire_n it_o be_v make_v like_o the_o fire_n no_o substance_n remain_v nothing_o be_v leave_v so_o here_o also_o think_v thou_o that_o the_o mystery_n be_v consume_v by_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n answer_n they_o be_v easy_o answer_v and_o yet_o our_o papist_n think_v by_o these_o word_n of_o chrisostome_n that_o they_o have_v the_o conquest_n because_o he_o say_v that_o we_o see_v no_o bread_n nor_o wine_n but_o as_o wax_v in_o the_o fire_n they_o be_v consume_v to_o nothing_o so_o that_o no_o substance_n remain_v if_o they_o have_v rehearse_v no_o more_o but_o the_o very_a next_o sentence_n that_o follow_v in_o chrisostome_n which_o crafty_o and_o devilish_o they_o leave_v out_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o doctor_n will_v easy_o have_v appear_v which_o word_n that_o follow_v be_v these_o wherefore_o say_v he_o when_o you_o come_v to_o these_o mystery_n do_v not_o think_v that_o you_o receive_v by_o a_o man_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o with_o tongue_n you_o receive_v fire_n by_o the_o angel_n seraphin_n think_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o salvation_n flow_v out_o of_o the_o pure_a and_o godly_a side_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o come_v to_o it_o receive_v it_o with_o pure_a lip_n cast_v down_o your_o eye_n lift_v up_o your_o mind_n mourn_a privy_o without_o speech_n and_o rejoice_v in_o our_o heart_n now_o if_o the_o papist_n will_v gather_v of_o the_o word_n by_o they_o recite_v that_o there_o be_v neither_o bread_n nor_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n than_o we_o may_v aswell_o gather_v of_o the_o word_n that_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v neither_o priest_n nor_o christ_n body_n for_o as_o in_o the_o former_a sentence_n chrisostome_n say_v that_o we_o may_v not_o think_v that_o we_o see_v bread_n and_o wine_n so_o in_o the_o second_o sentence_n he_o say_v that_o we_o may_v not_o think_v that_o we_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o priest_n hand_n now_o if_o upon_o the_o second_o sentence_n the_o papist_n will_v say_v it_o can_v not_o be_v true_o gather_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a communion_n there_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n minister_v by_o the_o priest_n then_o must_v they_o confess_v also_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v well_o and_o true_o gather_v upon_o the_o first_o sentence_n that_o there_o be_v no_o bread_n nor_o wine_n but_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v together_o in_o the_o holy_a communion_n christ_n himself_o spiritual_o eat_v and_o drunken_a and_o nourish_v the_o right_a believer_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o a_o sacrament_n declare_v the_o same_o and_o the_o priest_n as_o a_o minister_n thereof_o wherefore_o chrisostome_n mean_v not_o absolute_o to_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n or_o to_o deny_v utter_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v there_o but_o his_o intent_n be_v to_o draw_v our_o mind_n up_o towards_o heaven_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o consider_v so_o much_o the_o bread_n wine_n priest_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o shall_v consider_v his_o divinity_n &_o holy_a spirit_n give_v unto_o we_o to_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o use_v so_o many_o time_n these_o word_n note_n think_v and_o think_v not_o willing_a we_o by_o these_o word_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o fix_v or_o set_v our_o thought_n and_o mind_n upon_o bread_n wine_n priest_n nor_o christ_n body_n but_o to_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n high_a unto_o his_o spirit_n and_o divinity_n without_o the_o which_o his_o body_n avail_v nothing_o as_o he_o say_v himself_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o give_v
rejoice_a against_o hell_n 3._o for_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n he_o have_v lead_v captivity_n captive_a 4._o and_o have_v spoil_v his_o enemy_n he_o have_v enrich_v 1_n and_o do_v daily_o enrich_v his_o people_n with_o heavenly_a richesse_n preserve_v and_o defend_v his_o church_n with_o the_o mighty_a strength_n of_o his_o arm_n against_o the_o malicious_a and_o cruel_a tyrant_n of_o satan_n the_o peril_n 2._o and_o of_o all_o the_o mighty_a ruler_n of_o darkness_n who_o he_o do_v in_o despite_n of_o their_o heart_n bridle_n and_o keep_v in_o that_o they_o can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o he_o suffer_v they_o and_o appoint_v they_o to_o do_v for_o the_o set_n forth_o of_o his_o own_o glory_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o his_o elect_a and_o edify_v of_o his_o congregation_n and_o church_n three_o we_o learn_v by_o his_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o seek_v for_o he_o here_o in_o the_o earth_n nor_o upon_o the_o earth_n nor_o about_o the_o earth_n 25._o as_o s._n ambrose_n write_v but_o in_o heaven_n above_o where_o he_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n &_o that_o therefore_o we_o can_v do_v he_o no_o great_a honour_n and_o service_n than_o to_o worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n bestow_v for_o his_o sake_n and_o love_n upon_o his_o poor_a needy_a member_n all_o that_o we_o can_v find_v in_o our_o heart_n to_o bestow_v upon_o he_o if_o he_o be_v still_o here_o upon_o the_o earth_n conversant_a among_o we_o and_o therefore_o to_o put_v we_o in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o true_a service_n that_o he_o do_v require_v at_o our_o hand_n 14._o he_o say_v you_o shall_v have_v the_o poor_a with_o you_o always_o and_o whensoever_o you_o will_v you_o may_v do_v they_o good_a but_o i_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v always_o 1._o we_o learn_v also_o by_o it_o that_o we_o shall_v in_o no_o wise_n set_v our_o mind_n upon_o this_o transitory_a world_n sith_o that_o our_o head_n have_v forsake_v it_o and_o have_v take_v away_o his_o corporal_a presence_n from_o it_o but_o that_o we_o shall_v go_v and_o walk_v through_o it_o as_o pilgrim_n and_o stranger_n 3._o have_v always_o our_o conversation_n above_o in_o heaven_n where_o he_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o where_o we_o shall_v have_v with_o he_o 5._o a_o permanent_a or_o everlasting_a city_n of_o a_o most_o strong_a and_o sure_a building_n and_o of_o such_o a_o foundation_n that_o it_o can_v never_o be_v shake_v nor_o remove_v 7._o jew_n whereby_o the_o shameful_a error_n both_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o also_o of_o those_o that_o follow_v they_o be_v quite_o overthrow_v which_o do_v think_v that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v tarry_v and_o reign_v here_o beneath_o in_o the_o earth_n with_o his_o elect_a and_o choose_v for_o by_o his_o ascension_n up_o in_o to_o heaven_n 18._o he_o do_v sufficient_o declare_v unto_o we_o that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n but_o that_o it_o be_v heavenly_a and_o eternal_a but_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v most_o comfortable_a of_o all_o that_o by_o his_o ascend_v up_o 7._o we_o be_v assure_v to_o have_v a_o most_o mighty_a intercessor_n and_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n for_o sith_o that_o he_o do_v continual_o appear_v before_o the_o face_n of_o god_n for_o we_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o doubt_v 3_n but_o that_o he_o be_v our_o intercessor_n advocate_n &_o mediator_n therefore_o 4._o we_o need_v to_o fear_v no_o manner_n of_o thing_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n or_o in_o earth_n if_o we_o have_v a_o steadfast_a confidence_n and_o trust_n in_o he_o 4._o for_o sith_o that_o he_o be_v true_a god_n without_o doubt_n he_o be_v almighty_a sith_o that_o he_o be_v of_o one_o substance_n and_o power_n with_o the_o father_n all_o that_o his_o father_n have_v be_v he_o sith_o that_o he_o have_v be_v to_o the_o father_n obedient_a unto_o the_o very_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o he_o be_v his_o well-beloved_a son_n we_o have_v no_o occasion_n to_o fear_v that_o his_o father_n will_v say_v he_o nay_o of_o any_o thing_n that_o we_o ask_v of_o he_o in_o his_o name_n on_o the_o other_o side_n sith_o that_o christ_n be_v our_o brother_n flesh_n of_o our_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o our_o bone_n and_o also_o our_o head_n without_o all_o doubt_n he_o do_v love_v we_o he_o have_v pity_n and_o compassion_n upon_o we_o we_o ought_v not_o therefore_o to_o think_v that_o he_o will_v forsake_v his_o own_o flesh_n or_o that_o he_o will_v suffer_v his_o dear_a and_o well-beloved_a spouse_n to_o perish_v for_o he_o have_v therefore_o put_v on_o our_o flesh_n and_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o all_o our_o infirmity_n be_v temp_v in_o all_o thing_n like_v unto_o we_o but_o yet_o without_o sin_n thereby_o to_o assure_v we_o that_o we_o have_v a_o bishop_n that_o know_v our_o infirmity_n and_o misery_n and_o that_o can_v have_v compassion_n upon_o we_o and_o that_o whatsoever_o do_v happen_v or_o chance_v to_o be_v do_v unto_o we_o be_v his_o lively_a member_n he_o will_v impute_v it_o to_o be_v do_v unto_o himself_o as_o it_o do_v most_o plain_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n that_o he_o speak_v unto_o saul_n 5._o who_o persecute_v his_o church_n and_o that_o also_o as_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n he_o be_v ready_a to_o deliver_v his_o member_n from_o all_o misery_n and_o calamity_n as_o he_o himself_o be_v deliver_v but_o here_o will_v i_o bring_v in_o the_o comfortable_a scripture_n that_o do_v certify_v we_o that_o we_o have_v in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n such_o a_o mighty_a friend_n 2d_o which_o have_v all_o power_n give_v unto_o he_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n do_v always_o appear_v before_o the_o face_n of_o the_o great_a and_o eternal_a god_n 7._o which_o ought_v to_o be_v unto_o we_o a_o marvellous_a assurance_n and_o comfort_n against_o all_o temptation_n and_o peril_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o bless_a apostle_n s._n paul_n it_o be_v christ_n which_o be_v dead_a 8._o yea_o rather_o which_o be_v rise_v again_o which_o be_v also_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n &_o make_v intercession_n for_o us._n 7._o again_o this_o man_n because_o he_o endure_v for_o ever_o have_v a_o everlasting_a priesthood_n wherefore_o he_o be_v able_a also_o to_o save_v they_o full_o or_o perfect_o that_o come_v unto_o god_n by_o he_o everliving_a for_o to_o make_v intercession_n for_o they_o and_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n christ_n say_v he_o be_v not_o enter_v in_o to_o the_o holy_a place_n that_o be_v make_v with_o hand_n 9_o which_o be_v but_o similitude_n of_o true_a thing_n but_o be_v enter_v into_o very_a heaven_n for_o to_o appear_v now_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n for_o we_o do_v not_o the_o bless_a evangelist_n s._n john_n say_v also_o my_o little_a child_n 2._o these_o thing_n write_v i_o unto_o you_o that_o you_o sin_v not_o yet_o if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v righteous_a these_o scripture_n do_v sufficient_o teach_v we_o that_o we_o have_v such_o a_o friend_n intercessor_n &_o advocate_n in_o the_o heavenly_a court_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v deny_v unto_o he_o of_o the_o father_n yea_o he_o himself_o which_o can_v not_o lie_v speak_v these_o most_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a word_n unto_o we_o all_o uere_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o 16._o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v the_o father_n in_o my_o name_n he_o will_v geve_v it_o unto_o you_o have_v then_o so_o many_o notable_a sentence_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n be_v our_o advocate_n and_o mediator_n and_o that_o he_o do_v now_o appear_v before_o the_o face_n of_o the_o father_n for_o to_o make_v intercession_n for_o us._n the_o xxv_o chapter_n ¶_o against_o pray_v and_o intercession_n to_o saint_n what_o need_n have_v we_o to_o fly_v unto_o dead_a creature_n i_o mean_v unto_o dead_a saint_n for_o to_o make_v they_o our_o advocate_n and_o intercesour_n sith_o that_o we_o have_v not_o one_o only_a syllable_n in_o all_o the_o whole_a scripture_n that_o bid_v we_o so_o to_o do_v ▪_o again_o where_o have_v we_o any_o promise_n in_o the_o book_n of_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v access_n unto_o god_n by_o they_o or_o that_o we_o shall_v the_o rather_o obtain_v our_o petition_n prayer_n and_o request_n by_o their_o intercession_n and_o mediation_n 14._o whatsoever_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n but_o this_o pray_n unto_o dead_a saint_n that_o they_o shall_v make_v intercession_n unto_o god_n for_o we_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n for_o why_o it_o have_v no_o ground_n at_o
any_o other_o for_o to_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o sith_o that_o god_n in_o his_o holy_a scripture_n and_o word_n do_v appoint_v he_o to_o be_v our_o only_a intercessor_n advocate_n and_o mediator_n and_o none_o other_o ¶_o the_o xxix_o chapter_n ¶_o of_o christ_n come_n to_o judgement_n in_o the_o last_o day_n 4._o who_o in_o the_o time_n appoint_v of_o his_o father_n shall_v come_v to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a even_o as_o he_o be_v see_v to_o go_v up_o the_o angel_n testify_v the_o same_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o same_o shape_n form_n figure_n and_o substance_n that_o he_o take_v of_o we_o in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n of_o who_o he_o take_v his_o undefiled_a substance_n and_o that_o be_v glorify_v and_o endue_v with_o immortality_n he_o do_v carry_v up_o into_o heaven_n he_o shall_v come_v i_o say_v in_o his_o majesty_n accompany_v with_o all_o the_o holy_a angel_n descend_v from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n and_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o trump_n of_o god_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v arise_v first_o than_o we_o which_o shall_v live_v even_o we_o which_o shall_v remain_v shall_v be_v catch_v up_o with_o they_o in_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n there_o be_v many_o even_o among_o the_o old_a ancient_a writer_n that_o by_o the_o quick_a do_v understand_v those_o that_o do_v live_v in_o glory_n with_o christ_n dead_a and_o by_o the_o dead_a do_v understand_v those_o that_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n be_v also_o dead_a unto_o god_n for_o say_v they_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o any_o shall_v be_v find_v alive_a sith_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v say_v that_o it_o be_v appoint_v unto_o all_o man_n 9_o that_o they_o shall_v once_o die_v but_o it_o appear_v most_o manifest_o both_o by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o also_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n that_o at_o the_o same_o present_a time_n and_o hour_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v come_v for_o to_o judge_v all_o flesh_n some_o shall_v be_v find_v alive_a for_o christ●_n our_o saviour_n say_v 19_o that_o as_o the_o time_n of_o no_n &_o of_o sodom_n be_v so_o shall_v the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v but_o who_o will_v say_v that_o none_o be_v alive_a when_o the_o flood_n do_v sudden_o overwhelm_v all_o the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o when_o god_o do_v rain_v fire_n and_o brimstone_n upon_o the_o inhabiter_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorra_n if_o any_o man_n will_v say_v so_o the_o plain_a and_o manifest_a scripture_n shall_v reprove_v he_o a_o liar_n sith_o then_o the_o come_n of_o our_o eternal_a and_o everlasting_a judge_n understand_v shall_v be_v as_o the_o time_n of_o no_n and_o of_o sodom_n be_v it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o all_o sleep_n how_o then_o shall_v the_o saying_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v fulfil_v where_o he_o do_v both_o say_v and_o write_v that_o it_o be_v appoint_v unto_o all_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v once_o die_v uere_o the_o holy_a apostle_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v himself_o 15._o when_o he_o say_v behold_v i_o show_v you_o a_o mystery_n we_o shall_v not_o all_o sleep_n but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v and_o that_o in_o a_o moment_n and_o in_o the_o twinckel_n of_o a_o eye_n at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o last_o trump_n for_o the_o trump_n shall_v blow_v and_o the_o dead_a shall_v arise_v uncorruptible_a and_o we_o shall_v be_v change_v for_o this_o corruptible_a must_v put_v on_o uncorruptible_a and_o this_o mortal_a must_v put_v on_o immortality_n 4._o this_o sudden_a change_n and_o alteration_n shall_v be_v unto_o we_o which_o shall_v live_v even_a which_o shall_v remain_v in_o steed_n of_o death_n for_o that_o which_o in_o we_o be_v corruptible_a shall_v put_v on_o uncorruption_n and_o that_o which_o be_v mortal_a shall_v put_v on_o immortality_n to_o be_v short_a this_o transitory_a life_n shall_v in_o a_o moment_n and_o in_o the_o twinkle_a of_o a_o eye_n be_v change_v into_o a_o most_o blessedfull_a life_n which_o never_o shall_v have_v end_n and_o of_o this_o have_v we_o a_o most_o evident_a and_o plain_a example_n 2._o both_o in_o enoch_n and_o elias_n which_o be_v take_v up_o quick_a the_o true_a meaning_n then_o of_o this_o article_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o sermon_n that_o peter_n make_v unto_o cornelius_n 4._o and_o out_o of_o the_o solemn_a protestation_n that_o saint_n paul_n use_v to_o his_o disciple_n timothy_n be_v that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n shall_v come_v again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n ▪_o in_o his_o glorify_a manhood_n that_o he_o take_v of_o we_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v judge_v both_o they_o that_o he_o shall_v find_v alive_a here_o in_o the_o earth_n and_o also_o the_o dead_a i_o mean_v all_o those_o that_o sleep_n in_o their_o grave_n until_o the_o general_a resurrection_n of_o all_o flesh_n 5._o for_o the_o father_n have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n unto_o the_o son_n 5._o that_o all_o man_n shall_v honour_v the_o son_n even_o as_o the_o father_n which_o true_o ought_v to_o be_v very_o comfortable_a unto_o we_o all_o 21._o &_o to_o put_v away_o all_o vain_a fear_n from_o the_o unquiet_a &_o trouble_a conscience_n of_o the_o christian_n for_o sith_o that_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v we_o who_o of_o the_o father_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v the_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n of_o all_o they_o that_o put_v their_o whole_a trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o 3_n seek_v only_o to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n passion_n and_o bloodshedding_n how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v condemn_v we_o 2._o shall_v he_o that_o be_v our_o advocate_n intercessor_n and_o mediator_n give_v sentence_n against_o we_o jesus_n christ_n yester_a day_n and_o to_o day_n and_o the_o same_o continue_v for_o ever_o 13._o if_o he_o continue_v still_o jesus_n christ_n what_o other_o thing_n can_v be_v do_v 1._o but_o save_v his_o people_n as_o the_o angel_n most_o true_o testify_v of_o he_o therefore_o when_o soever_o in_o the_o extreme_a agony_n and_o conflict_n of_o our_o conscience_n 5._o our_o mortal_a enemy_n satan_n do_v lay_v before_o our_o eye_n that_o dreadful_a day_n of_o judgement_n 2._o for_o to_o drive_v we_o to_o desperation_n let_v we_o bold_o appeal_v from_o christ_n be_v judge_n to_o christ_n be_v jesus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o saviour_n of_o his_o people_n let_v we_o always_o have_v in_o our_o mind_n and_o heart_n these_o godly_a saying_n of_o saint_n paul_n who_o shall_v lay_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o god_n choose_v 2._o it_o be_v god_o that_o justify_v who_o then_o shall_v condemn_v it_o be_v christ_n which_o be_v dead_a yea_o rather_o which_o be_v rise_v again_o which_o be_v also_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n 10._o and_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o we_o be_v in_o his_o hand_n no_o man_n none_o can_v take_v we_o out_o because_o he_o be_v strong_a than_o all_o be_v we_o not_o 5._o as_o many_o as_o be_v graft_v in_o he_o by_o a_o lively_a faith_n flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n bone_n of_o his_o bone_n be_v we_o not_o his_o member_n and_o he_o our_o head_n how_o can_v it_o be_v then_o that_o be_v our_o head_n he_o shall_v cast_v we_o away_o 1._o be_v not_o these_o saint_n paul_n word_n the_o husband_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o wife_n even_o as_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o the_o same_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o body_n 5._o let_v we_o then_o endeavour_v ourselves_o by_o a_o lively_a faith_n work_n through_o charity_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o may_v we_o be_v sure_a that_o he_o will_v come_v to_o save_v and_o not_o to_o condemn_v we_o 2._o for_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n which_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n for_o why_o he_o be_v a_o saviour_n of_o his_o body_n but_o how_o can_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n unto_o judgement_n will_n some_o body_n say_v be_v comfortable_a unto_o we_o objection_n sith_o that_o we_o must_v give_v account_n of_o every_o idle_a word_n 12._o that_o ever_o we_o speak_v in_o all_o our_o life_n time_n or_o sith_o he_o will_v reward_v every_o man_n accord_v to_o his_o deed_n do_v not_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o we_o must_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n 5._o that_o every_o man_n may_v receive_v the_o work_n of_o his_o body_n accord_v to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v do_v 4._o whether_o it_o be_v to_o good_a or_o evil_a yea_o at_o that_o day_n the_o very_a thought_n &_o secret_n
cry_v and_o crave_v for_o mercy_n but_o no_o mercy_n shall_v be_v grant_v they_o no_o less_o rigour_n doubtless_a shall_v be_v use_v against_o they_o if_o for_o a_o small_a offence_n they_o will_v be_v revenge_v to_o the_o uttermost_a for_o as_o the_o scripture_n testify_v he_o that_o seek_v vengeance_n shall_v find_v vengeance_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o shall_v sure_o keep_v unto_o he_o his_o sin_n 28._o which_o thing_n christ_n our_o saviour_n teach_v we_o by_o a_o a_o lively_a parable_n or_o similitude_n when_o he_o bring_v in_o the_o king_n that_o do_v call_v his_o 〈…〉_o and_o account_v 12._o and_o unto_o who_o one_o be_v bring_v that_o do_v owe_v he_o ten_o thousand_o talent_v which_o he_o forgive_v he_o ●●ite_o because_o that_o he●_z have_v beseech_v he_o but_o this_o man_n be_v full_a of_o mischief_n &_o will_v not_o show_v the_o like_a mercy_n unto_o his_o fellow_n servant_n that_o do_v owe_v he_o but_o a_o hundred_o penny_n and_o therefore_o his_o lord_n be_v angry_a and_o deliver_v he_o unto_o the_o jailers_n till_o he_o have_v pay_v the_o uttermost_a farthing_n even_o so_o shall_v my_o heavenly_a father_n do_v unto_o you_o do_v our_o saviour_n christ_n conclude_v except_o you_o do_v from_o the_o bottom_n of_o your_o heart_n forgive_v your_o brethren_n their_o trespass_n the_o third_o sort_n of_o people_n which_o shall_v receive_v judgement_n without_o mercy_n be_v the_o justiciary_n &_o work_n monger_n which_o seek_v to_o be_v save_v and_o justify_v by_o their_o own_o work_n and_o merit_n and_o which_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n 10._o do_v go_v about_o to_o set_v up_o their_o own_o righteousness_n and_o so_o will_v in_o no_o wise_a be_v subject_a to_o the_o righteousness_n that_o be_v available_a before_o god_n they_o doubtless_a shall_v be_v call_v to_o a_o straight_o rekcn_v and_o account_v for_o why_o all_o they_o that_o be_v such_o do_v remain_v still_o under_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n as_o saint_n paul_n write_v say_v 3_n as_o many_o as_o be_v of_o work_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o many_o as_o go_v about_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n be_v under_o the_o curse_n for_o it_o be_v write_v curse_a be_v every_o man_n that_o continue_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o be_v then_o under_o the_o curse_n and_o malediction_n of_o god_n because_o that_o they_o do_v most_o unthankful_o refuse_v the_o merciful_a means_n that_o he_o have_v of_o his_o mere_a goodness_n appoint_v unto_o they_o for_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o they_o must_v needs_o run_v into_o everlasting_a condemnation_n do_v not_o the_o truth_n himself_o say_v 17._o that_o though_o we_o do_v all_o that_o he_o command_v we_o yet_o we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n but_o who_o in_o all_o the_o world_n be_v able_a to_o do_v the_o ten_o part_n of_o that_o which_o god_n do_v require_v of_o we_o and_o with_o that_o perfection_n as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v do_v not_o one_o man_n live_v in_o the_o world_n what_o be_v we_o then_o but_o a_o thousand_o time_n worse_o than_o unprofitable_a servant_n they_o therefore_o that_o go_v about_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o their_o own_o beggarly_a work_n and_o stink_a righteousness_n which_o before_o god_n be_v as_o the_o filthy_a clout_n of_o a_o menstruous_a woman_n 64._o be_v most_o worthy_a to_o find_v christ_n who_o they_o will_v make_v but_o a_o patch_a and_o a_o unperfeate_n saviour_n a_o most_o rigorous_a and_o extreme_a judge_n whereas_o if_o mistrust_v our_o own_o righteousness_n merit_n and_o do_n we_o do_v flee_v and_o appeal_v to_o the_o only_a mercy_n of_o god_n 4._o take_v a_o sure_a hold_n thereupon_o through_o faith_n in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o sa●ing_v unfeigned_o with_o david_n and_o job_n oh_o lord_n enter_v not_o into_o judgement_n with_o thy_o servant_n 143_o for_o in_o thy_o sight_n shall_v no_o man_n live_v be_v justify_v if_o i_o will_v justify_v myself_o 9_o my_o own_o mouth_n shall_v condemn_v i_o if_o i_o will_v be_v perfect_a 14._o he_o shall_v judge_v i_o wicked_a lo_o though_o he_o slay_v i_o y●t_o will_v i_o trust_v in_o he_o &_o i_o will_v reprove_v my_o way_n in_o his_o sight_n it_o be_v so_o far_o of_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o fear_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o come_n of_o our_o heavenly_a and_o eternal_a judge_n or_o that_o those_o grevous_a sentence_n and_o saying_n ought_v to_o be_v dreadful_a unto_o we_o that_o rather_o our_o saviour_n and_o judge_n bid_v we_o to_o look_v up_o 8._o and_o lift_v up_o our_o head_n assure_v we_o that_o then_o our_o salvation_n be_v at_o hand_n yea_o that_o we_o may_v be_v the_o more_o certain_a of_o it_o he_o promise_v that_o all_o his_o come_n he_o will_v send_v his_o angel_n with_o a_o great_a voice_n of_o a_o trump_n 4._o and_o that_o they_o shall_v gather_v together_o his_o choose_a and_o predestinate_v child_n from_o the_o four_o wind_n and_o from_o the_o one_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o other_o where_o soever_o we_o shall_v be_v then_o i_o mean_v when_o our_o saviour_n and_o judge_n shall_v come_v whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o any_o where_o else_o here_o in_o this_o vale_n of_o misery_n we_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o we_o shall_v be_v gather_v together_o unto_o he_o there_o for_o to_o receive_v our_o full_a and_o perfect_v salvation_n both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n 4._o let_v we_o not_o therefore_o suffer_v our_o enemy_n satan_n to_o drive_v we_o to_o any_o desperation_n by_o put_v we_o in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o dreadful_a day_n of_o judgement_n but_o rather_o in_o the_o conflict_n and_o agony_n of_o our_o conscience_n let_v we_o have_v always_o before_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o faith_n beside_o the_o goodly_a and_o comfortable_a saying_n 2._o that_o have_v be_v bring_v in_o already_o that_o christ_n shall_v not_o only_o come_v as_o a_o judge_n but_o as_o a_o most_o benign_a and_o merciful_a saviour_n of_o his_o people_n and_o therefore_o saint_n paul_n do_v write_v that_o from_o heaven_n we_o look_v for_o a_o saviour_n even_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n that_o they_o may_v be_v fashion_v like_o unto_o his_o glorious_a body_n 25._o in_o the_o mean_a while_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n to_o ourselves_o that_o our_o heart_n be_v not_o overcome_v with_o surfeit_v and_o drunkenness_n jest_n that_o day_n do_v come_v upon_o we_o unwares_o for_o it_o shall_v come_v as_o a_o snare_n on_o all_o they_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n therefore_o we_o have_v need_v to_o watch_v and_o pray_v that_o we_o may_v be_v ready_a when_o he_o come_v and_o that_o we_o may_v stand_v before_o he_o have_v and_o use_v the_o weapon_n that_o fainct_n paul_n minister_v unto_o we_o while_o we_o be_v here_o war_v against_o the_o fiery_a dart_n of_o the_o devil_n our_o enemy_n where_o he_o say_v 6._o take_v unto_o you_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a to_o resist_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n 5._o and_o have_v finish_v all_o thing_n stand_v fast_a and_o your_o loin_n gird_v about_o with_o verity_n and_o have_v on_o the_o breast_n plate_n of_o righteousness_n and_o your_o foot_n shoe_v with_o the_o preparation_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n 5._o above_o all_o take_v the_o shield_n of_o faith_n wherewith_o you_o may_v quench_v all_o the_o fiery_a dart_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o take_v the_o helmet_n of_o salvation_n 4._o and_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o pray_v all_o way_n with_o all_o manner_n of_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n in_o the_o spirit_n and_o watch_v thereunto_o with_o all_o perseverance_n and_o supplication_n for_o all_o saint_n 4._o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v 5._o take_v heed_n therefore_o that_o you_o walk_v circumspect_o not_o as_o fool_n but_o as_o wise_a redeem_v the_o time_n for_o the_o day_n be_v evil_a 6._o be_v you_o not_o drink_v with_o wine_n wherein_o be_v excess_n but_o be_v you_o fulfil_v with_o the_o spirit_n 3_n speak_v unto_o yourselves_o in_o psalm_n hymn_n and_o spiritual_a song_n sing_v and_o make_v melody_n to_o the_o lord_n in_o your_o heart_n song_n by_o psalm_n he_o undestand_v complaint_n to_o god_n narration_n and_o expostulation_n by_o hymn_n he_o proper_o contain_v thanks_n give_v by_o song_n he_o also_o contain_v praise_n and_o thanks_n give_v ▪_o but_o not_o so_o large_o and_o ample_o as_o hymn_n do_v so_o now_o we_o be_v alive_a 10._o if_o we_o stand_v fast_a in_o the_o lord_n say_v saint_n paul_n and_o no_o damnation_n nor_o trouble_n nor_o yet_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n
thing_n shall_v chance_v and_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o such_o manner_n of_o speak_v then_o our_o saviour_n do_v signify_v the_o great_a perplexity_n and_o anguish_n of_o they_o who_o god_n shall_v pour_v his_o vengeance_n upon_o at_o that_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o their_o rebellious_a disobedience_n against_o his_o holy_a and_o sacred_a word_n how_o so_o ever_o we_o take_v these_o word_n we_o can_v not_o excuse_v ourselves_o but_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v fulfil_v daily_o for_o we_o see_v even_o before_o our_o eye_n in_o what_o perplexity_n the_o enemy_n of_o god_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o how_o they_o fall_v into_o plain_a desperation_n and_o madness_n be_v in_o that_o case_n that_o they_o think_v hourly_o that_o hell_n shall_v swallow_v they_o up_o quick_a therefore_o let_v we_o not_o flatter_v ourselves_o 11._o or_o defer_v from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o repent_v and_o amend_v our_o life_n for_o the_o lord_n shall_v come_v as_o a_o thief_n even_o when_o we_o look_v less_o for_o he_o as_o for_o the_o come_n of_o elias_n and_o enoch_n we_o may_v content_v ourselves_o with_o the_o saying_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n touch_v the_o matter_n for_o when_o he_o have_v speak_v many_o thing_n in_o the_o commendation_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n he_o do_v add_v for_o a_o conclusion_n and_o if_o you_o will_v receive_v the_o same_o be_v elias_n which_o shall_v come_v mean_v thereby_o that_o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v the_o same_o elias_n that_o malachy_n the_o prophet_n do_v speak_v of_o which_o shall_v come_v before_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n 3_n as_o the_o angel_n do_v declare_v unto_o zaharie_n 1._o say_v and_o he_o shall_v go_v before_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elias_n to_o make_v the_o people_n ready_a for_o he_o but_o satan_n the_o devil_n that_o he_o may_v persuade_v the_o jew_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v not_o the_o messiah_n do_v by_o the_o pharisee_o and_o scribe_n blow_v abroad_o among_o the_o people_n that_o elias_n must_v come_v in_o person_n and_o that_o therefore_o sith_o he_o be_v not_o come_v christ_n our_o saviour_n be_v not_o true_a messiah_n for_o this_o cause_n do_v the_o apostle_n ask_v christ_n why_o the_o scribe_n say_v that_o elias_n must_v come_v first_o 17._o unto_o who_o he_o answer_v that_o elias_n be_v come_v already_o whereby_o they_o understand_v that_o he_o speak_v unto_o they_o of_o john_n the_o baptist_n even_o so_o now_o at_o this_o present_n to_o make_v the_o world_n to_o live_v in_o a_o security_n 11._o the_o devil_n go_v about_o by_o his_o false_a prophet_n to_o make_v man_n believe_v that_o elias_n and_o enoch_n must_v come_v in_o person_n before_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o all_o this_o do_v he_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o as_o long_o as_o we_o see_v that_o they_o be_v not_o come_v personal_o we_o shall_v think_v still_o that_o the_o lord_n do_v defer_v his_o come_n and_o so_o begin_v to_o smite_v our_o fellow_n and_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v with_o the_o drunken_a 24._o that_o we_o may_v be_v reward_v with_o the_o hypocrite_n where_o shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_v of_o tooth_n it_o be_v without_o all_o doubt_n that_o enoch_n and_o elias_n be_v come_v already_o not_o in_o person_n but_o in_o spirit_n for_o how_o many_o have_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n already_o stir_v up_o and_o send_v in_o these_o our_o day_n in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elias_n and_o of_o enoch_n for_o to_o reprove_v the_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n hypocrisy_n and_o wickedness_n of_o the_o world_n 11_o these_o be_v the_o two_o faithful_a witness_n who_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o in_o the_o revelation_n of_o saint_n john_n by_o the_o which_o small_a number_n the_o faithful_a and_o earnest_a preacher_n of_o god_n word_n be_v understand_v first_o because_o that_o they_o be_v inspire_v and_o move_v with_o the_o same_o zealous_a spirit_n that_o elias_n and_o enoch_n be_v inspire_v withal_o second_o because_o that_o they_o be_v but_o a_o small_a number_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o adversary_n and_o yet_o sufficient_a for_o to_o reprove_v and_o condemn_v the_o world_n of_o iniquity_n and_o unfaithfulness_n 6._o for_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n all_o thing_n shall_v be_v establish_v let_v not_o then_o this_o erroneous_a &_o pernicious_a doctrine_n of_o satan_n touch_v the_o personal_a &_o corporal_a come_n of_o elias_n and_o enoch_n seduce_v &_o deceive_v we_o for_o there_o be_v many_o eliass_n &_o enoches_n in_o the_o world_n already_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v unto_o we_o a_o plain_a certificate_n that_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o if_o we_o have_v none_o other_o token_n and_o sign_n yet_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n ought_v to_o suffice_v we_o where_o he_o say_v as_o the_o time_n of_o no_n and_o of_o sodom_n be_v 17._o so_o shall_v the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v this_o one_o say_v aught_o to_o put_v we_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n for_o what_o tyranny_n 18._o oppression_n and_o cruelty_n what_o pride_n what_o excess_n in_o all_o thing_n what_o fraud_n deceit_n swear_v forswer_a usury_n extortion_n bribery_n hordome_z unlawful_a marriage_n put_v away_o of_o lawful_a wife_n buggery_n daunsynge_n break_v of_o the_o sabathe_n day_n disobedience_n to_o father_n and_o mother_n speak_v evil_a of_o they_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n 2._o drunkard_n glutton_n and_o epicure_n idolater_n ungodliness_n security_n and_o carelessness_n railer_n upon_o the_o preacher_n not_o regard_v their_o doctrine_n be_v use_v then_o that_o be_v not_o now_o use_v in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n read_v you_o the_o scripture_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o all_o the_o abominable_a vice_n 18.19_o wherefore_o god_n do_v in_o time_n past_a drown_v the_o world_n and_o also_o rain_v fire_n and_o brimstone_n upon_o the_o city_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorra_n do_v reign_n now_o in_o all_o place_n and_o yet_o not_o punish_v as_o for_o antichrist_n who_o they_o say_v must_v come_v before_o that_o day_n it_o be_v without_o all_o doubt_n that_o he_o be_v already_o in_o the_o world_n for_o antechrist_n what_o worse_a antichrist_n can_v we_o have_v then_o either_o mahomet_n be_v or_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v yet_o a_o thousand_o time_n worse_o than_o mahomet_n be_v as_o for_o false_a christ_n all_o church_n and_o altar_n be_v full_a of_o they_o christes_fw-fr again_o there_o be_v never_o so_o many_o false_a prophet_n in_o the_o world_n prophet_n as_o be_v now_o at_o this_o present_a time_n which_o seek_v all_o manner_n mean_n that_o can_v be_v seek_v now_o by_o erroneous_a papistical_a doctrine_n now_o by_o false_a and_o counterfeit_a miracle_n to_o deceive_v even_o the_o very_a elect_v 13._o if_o it_o be_v possible_a by_o any_o mean_a these_o thing_n be_v well_o consider_v let_v we_o beware_v that_o we_o be_v none_o of_o those_o mocker_n which_o do_v walk_v after_o their_o own_o lust_n 4._o and_o say_v where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n for_o since_o the_o father_n die_v all_o thing_n continue_v in_o the_o same_o estate_n wherein_o they_o be_v at_o the_o beginning_n for_o as_o saint_n peter_n say_v the_o lord_n be_v not_o slack_a to_o fulfil_v his_o promise_n as_o some_o man_n count_v it_o slackness_n 3._o but_o be_v patient_a to_o we_o ward_n and_o will_v have_v no_o man_n lose_v but_o will_v receive_v all_o man_n to_o repentance_n nevertheless_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v come_v as_o a_o thief_n in_o the_o night_n wherefore_o see_v that_o we_o look_v for_o such_o thing_n let_v we_o be_v diligent_a that_o we_o may_v be_v find_v of_o he_o in_o peace_n without_o spot_n and_o undefiled_a and_o suppose_v that_o the_o long_a suffer_a of_o the_o lord_n be_v salvation_n but_o of_o that_o day_n neither_o the_o angel_n nor_o yet_o the_o son_n of_o man_n do_v know_v but_o only_o our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n 17._o and_o therefore_o i_o do_v great_o marvel_v at_o that_o mad_a toy_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n which_o dare_v so_o presumptuous_o affirm_v that_o the_o lord_n shall_v come_v this_o day_n or_o that_o day_n day_n sith_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o that_o he_o be_v man_n or_o touch_v his_o manhood_n know_v not_o of_o it_o but_o touch_v his_o godhead_n he_o know_v all_o thing_n that_o the_o father_n do_v also_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v ware_n of_o all_o dream_n &_o fantasy_n of_o man_n which_o weary_a themselves_o &_o other_o in_o search_v out_o curious_o the_o time_n that_o the_o lord_n shall_v appear_v allege_v for_o themselves_o a_o vain_a prophecy_n and_o most_o false_o ascribe_v to_o elias_n that_o two_o thousand_o year_n before_o the_o law_n two_o thousand_o year_n
give_v ear_n to_o paul_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o spirit_n the_o prophet_n say_v erunt_fw-la omnes_fw-la docti_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la they_o shall_v be_v all_o teach_v of_o god_n who_o so_o ever_o beside_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n contain_v in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n saying_n but_o regard_v it_o as_o vile_a and_o of_o no_o force_n nor_o yet_o authority_n but_o call_v name_v and_o report_v it_o with_o these_o word_n and_o such_o like_a blasphemy_n dead_a ink_n a_o liveless_a matter_n a_o dumb_a judge_n that_o can_v not_o speak_v a_o black_a gospel_n inken_n divinity_n a_o nose_n of_o ware_n do_v deny_v this_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o do_v deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v true_a and_o natural_a god_n sith_o that_o any_o insufficiency_n or_o unperfection_n be_v find_v in_o his_o doctrine_n for_o why_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o god_n to_o do_v all_o thing_n with_o most_o consummate_a perfection_n whereby_o it_o do_v follow_v that_o he_o which_o do_v any_o thing_n with_o unperfection_n be_v no_o true_a and_o natural_a god_n they_o therefore_o that_o deny_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o also_o do_v despise_v mock_v scorn_n and_o speak_v unreverent_o of_o it_o contain_v in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n not_o to_o be_v perfect_a or_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n be_v plain_a macedonian_n for_o they_o deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v true_a and_o natural_a god_n and_o all_o they_o that_o follow_v this_o opinion_n and_o doctrine_n not_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o most_o true_a and_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n 1._o which_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n and_o spouse_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o true_a church_n and_o spouse_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v bear_v of_o new_a not_o of_o mortal_a seed_n ●_o but_o of_o immortal_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o live_v and_o last_v for_o ever_o so_o be_v it_o build_v upon_o the_o sure_a foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n christ_n jesus_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n wherefore_o 11._o we_o must_v learn_v first_o of_o all_o to_o believe_v god_n second_o to_o believe_v he_o as_o god_n three_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n we_o must_v believe_v god_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v creator_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o that_o he_o be_v omnipotent_a we_o must_v believe_v god_n as_o god_n that_o be_v we_o must_v believe_v he_o as_o he_o have_v declare_v and_o open_v himself_o in_o his_o holy_a and_o sacred_a scripture_n unto_o we_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n that_o be_v to_o put_v our_o whole_a trust_n confidence_n and_o affiance_n only_o in_o he_o mercy_n and_o to_o call_v unto_o and_o upon_o he_o in_o all_o our_o trouble_n misery_n and_o adversity_n and_o upon_o none_o other_o and_o also_o constant_o and_o assure_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o by_o his_o power_n he_o sustain_v we_o by_o his_o providence_n he_o govern_v we_o by_o his_o goodness_n nourish_v we_o and_o by_o his_o mercy_n save_v we_o and_o endue_v we_o with_o all_o kind_n of_o blessing_n so_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v in_o none_o but_o in_o god_n the_o father_n that_o love_v we_o in_o god_n the_o son_n that_o redeem_v we_o and_o in_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o sanctify_v we_o although_o three_o in_o person_n yet_o one_o in_o essence_n and_o godhead_n 29._o saint_n agustine_n therefore_o say_v credimus_fw-la paulo_n non_fw-la credimus_fw-la in_o paulum_fw-la credimus_fw-la petro_n non_fw-la credimus_fw-la in_o petrum_fw-la we_o believe_v say_v he_o paul_n but_o we_o believe_v not_o in_o paul_n we_o believe_v peter_n but_o we_o believe_v not_o in_o peter_n the_o xxxiiij_o chapter_n ¶_o what_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o where_o it_o be_v this_o then_o shall_v be_v my_o belief_n touch_v the_o true_a catholic_a and_o universal_a church_n 2._o all_o they_o that_o be_v beget_v of_o new_a with_o the_o immortal_a seed_n of_o god_n word_n and_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n have_v christ_n for_o their_o chief_a corner_n stone_n by_o who_o only_a spirit_n and_o word_n they_o be_v guide_v and_o rule_v in_o what_o country_n or_o nation_n under_o the_o heaven_n so_o ever_o then_o be_v be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n we_o may_v also_o define_v and_o set_v forth_o the_o church_n after_o this_o manner_n be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o holy_a congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o by_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n be_v unite_v &_o incorporate_v in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n who_o member_n they_o be_v 5._o and_o because_o that_o saviour_n christ_n be_v the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n all_o his_o member_n by_o he_o 5._o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n and_o the_o true_a christian_n be_v his_o body_n he_o be_v the_o bridegroom_n 1._o and_o the_o faithful_a be_v his_o spouse_n which_o he_o do_v cleanse_v with_o his_o blood_n give_a health_n and_o salvation_n unto_o his_o body_n and_o save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n this_o church_n be_v affix_v or_o bind_v to_o no_o several_a place_n but_o wheresoever_o two_o or_o three_o place_n be_v gather_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o mean_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n there_o the_o true_a church_n be_v they_o therefore_o that_o do_v aligate_v and_o bind_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n to_o this_o place_n or_o that_o place_n as_o though_o it_o can_v be_v no_o where_o else_o as_o our_o papist_n do_v be_v in_o this_o thing_n great_o deceive_v for_o though_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v so_o over_o whelm_v with_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n that_o there_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v no_o church_n at_o all_o yet_o god_n have_v always_o his_o elect_a and_o choose_v in_o one_o corner_n or_o other_o although_o they_o be_v unknown_a unto_o the_o world_n yea_o many_o time_n the_o faithful_a congregation_n be_v unknown_a unto_o the_o true_a and_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n as_o we_o may_v see_v by_o the_o example_n of_o elias_n the_o prophet_n 11._o who_o complain_v that_o he_o be_v leave_v alone_o but_o the_o lord_n make_v he_o a_o answer_n that_o he_o have_v seven_o thousand_o leave_v in_o israel_n which_o have_v not_o bow_v their_o knee_n unto_o baal_n who_o will_v not_o then_o have_v think_v that_o the_o church_n have_v be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o israel_n or_o in_o samaria_n where_o four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o false_a prophet_n be_v continual_o which_o do_v feed_v at_o jesabelles_n board_n or_o that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o church_n at_o all_o yet_o we_o see_v that_o god_n have_v even_o at_o that_o time_n his_o flock_n which_o he_o do_v preserve_v and_o keep_v unto_o himself_o although_o they_o be_v scatter_v abroad_o and_o not_o scarce_o know_v of_o the_o true_a and_o faithful_a prophet_n of_o god._n auxentium_fw-la therefore_o it_o be_v good_a to_o have_v always_o before_o our_o eye_n the_o goodly_a saying_n of_o hilary_n which_o write_v on_o this_o manner_n one_o thing_n say_v he_o i_o warn_v you_o of_o beware_v of_o antichrist_n it_o be_v not_o well_o that_o you_o have_v such_o a_o pleasure_n in_o the_o wall_n it_o be_v not_o well_o that_o you_o honour_n and_o reverence_v the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o house_n and_o building_n it_o be_v not_o well_o that_o under_o the_o colour_n of_o they_o you_o do_v bring_v in_o the_o name_n of_o peace_n be_v it_o to_o be_v doubt_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v in_o they_o the_o mountain_n the_o wood_n the_o lake_n the_o prison_n and_o mierie_z doungeon_n be_v more_o sure_a for_o i_o for_o the_o prophet_n remain_v in_o they_o or_o be_v let_v down_o into_o they_o do_v there_o prophecy_n this_o then_o be_v my_o belief_n that_o although_o the_o true_a preach_v of_o god_n word_n church_n and_o the_o right_a ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n accord_v to_o the_o lord_n institution_n and_o ordinance_n be_v the_o most_o infallible_a token_n and_o sign_n whereby_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n be_v know_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n yet_o many_o and_o sundry_a time_n by_o the_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o almighty_a god_n our_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n deserve_v the_o same_o these_o sign_n and_o token_n be_v so_o take_v away_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o world_n to_o know_v where_o this_o true_a church_n of_o god_n be_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o god_n have_v still_o his_o flock_n in_o one_o place_n or_o other_o he_o have_v still_o his_o elect_a and_o choose_v who_o he_o do_v preserve_v and_o keep_v in_o the_o
of_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o act_n 6._o but_o this_o must_v be_v do_v accord_v to_o the_o rule_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o they_o be_v blameless_a the_o husband_n of_o one_o wife_n 1._o vigilant_a sober_a and_o apt_a to_o teach_v etc_n etc_n second_o it_o have_v authority_n to_o teach_v by_o the_o lawful_a minister_n i_o mean_v by_o these_o minister_n that_o be_v lawful_o choose_v with_o the_o lai_n on_o of_o hand_n 6._o accord_v to_o the_o rule_n and_o cannon_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o these_o minister_n ought_v to_o teach_v and_o set_v forth_o none_o other_o thing_n 11._o than_o they_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o lord_n have_v always_o before_o their_o eye_n the_o saying_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n docete_fw-la eos_fw-la obseruare_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la precepi_fw-la vobis_fw-la teach_v they_o to_o keep_v and_o observe_v all_o thing_n 28._o what_o soever_o i_o command_v you_o and_o the_o same_o it_o be_v that_o we_o call_v potestatem_fw-la clavium_fw-la the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n which_o as_o it_o have_v be_v sufficient_o declare_v before_o consist_v in_o preach_v free_a remission_n of_o sin_n unto_o the_o faithful_a and_o true_a repentant_a sinner_n 18._o and_o eternal_a condemnation_n unto_o the_o unfaithful_a and_o unrepentaunte_a which_o thing_n if_o it_o be_v due_o do_v accord_v to_o the_o institution_n and_o ordinance_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n take_v no_o less_o effect_n then_o if_o it_o be_v do_v in_o heaven_n and_o under_o this_o do_v we_o comprehend_v the_o authority_n that_o the_o church_n have_v to_o excommunicate_v open_a sinner_n 2._o and_o to_o receive_v they_o again_o if_o they_o show_v true_a token_n of_o repentance_n and_o of_o amendment_n of_o life_n three_o the_o true_a and_o faithful_a church_n have_v authority_n to_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o minister_n thereunto_o lawful_o appoint_v so_o that_o it_o be_v do_v accord_v to_o the_o institution_n and_o ordinance_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n use_v such_o time_n and_o season_n as_o they_o shall_v think_v most_o expedient_a for_o the_o same_o four_o and_o last_o of_o all_o it_o have_v full_a authority_n and_o power_n to_o examine_v the_o doctrine_n and_o to_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o not_o as_o it_o be_v manifest_a and_o plain_a by_o these_o saying_n let_v two_o or_o three_o prophet_n speak_v in_o the_o church_n 15._o and_o let_v other_o judge_n again_o prove_v all_o thing_n and_o hold_v that_o which_o be_v good_a saint_n john_n say_v dear_o belove_v try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o not_o but_o this_o trial_n must_v be_v do_v with_o the_o touchstone_n of_o god_n word_n which_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ought_v to_o be_v the_o chief_a precedent_n in_o all_o synod_n and_o counsel_n so_o saint_n augustine_n say_v against_o maximinus_n 14._o these_o word_n now_o neither_o ought_v i_o to_o allege_v the_o counsel_n of_o nice_a nor_o thou_o the_o counsel_n of_o ariminum_n to_o take_v advantage_n thereby_o for_o i_o be_o not_o bind_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o one_o nor_o thou_o restrain_v to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o other_o sed_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la authoritatibus_fw-la non_fw-la quorumque_fw-la proprijs_fw-la sed_fw-la utrisque_fw-la communibus_fw-la testibus_fw-la res_fw-la cumre_fw-la causa_fw-la cum_fw-la causa_fw-la ratio_fw-la cum_fw-la ratione_fw-la concertet_fw-la but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o peculiar_a witness_n unto_o either_o of_o we_o but_o common_a and_o indifferent_a unto_o we_o both_o let_v one_o matter_n with_o a_o other_o cause_n with_o cause_n and_o reason_n contend_v with_o reason_n 5._o saint_n hierome_n therefore_o say_v omni_fw-la study_v legende_fw-la nobis_fw-la sunt_fw-la scripturae_fw-la &_o in_o lege_fw-la domini_fw-la meditandum_fw-la die_fw-la ac_fw-la nocte_fw-la ut_fw-la probati_fw-la trapezite_fw-la sciamus_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v read_v of_o we_o with_o all_o diligence_n and_o to_o meditate_v day_n and_o night_n in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o we_o may_v become_v perfect_v exchanger_n to_o know_v the_o false_a counterfeit_v doctrine_n from_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n 16._o saint_n origene_n also_o have_v these_o word_n sensus_fw-la nofiri_fw-la &_o enarrationes_fw-la sine_fw-la scripture_n testibus_fw-la non_fw-la fidem_fw-la habet_fw-la our_o judgement_n and_o exposition_n without_o witness_n of_o the_o holy_a scripres_fw-fr have_v no_o credit_n thus_o we_o may_v plain_o see_v that_o all_o our_o matter_n must_v be_v try_v by_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n err_v so_o far_o forth_o do_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n extend_v which_o as_o it_o can_v not_o err_v as_o long_o as_o she_o take_v god_n word_n &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o her_o guide_n so_o assoon_o as_o she_o forsake_v god_n word_n err_v and_o the_o guide_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n she_o fall_v into_o all_o kind_n of_o error_n &_o at_o length_n do_v become_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n the_o church_n of_o the_o malignant_a &_o the_o stink_a harlot_n of_o antichrist_n god._n howbeit_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n do_v never_o so_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n but_o that_o god_n do_v always_o preserve_v unto_o himself_o a_o certain_a number_n which_o will_v never_o agree_v nor_o consent_v unto_o ungodliness_n and_o from_o who_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n be_v not_o take_v away_o and_o because_o that_o these_o be_v unknown_a of_o the_o world_n as_o they_o that_o lack_v the_o outward_a token_n and_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n church_n which_o be_v the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n and_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o use_n of_o true_a discipline_n accord_v to_o the_o institution_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v common_o call_v the_o invisible_a church_n 10._o not_o because_o that_o man_n be_v invisible_a which_o thing_n can_v not_o be_v as_o long_o as_o they_o be_v here_o conversant_a upon_o the_o earth_n but_o because_o that_o they_o be_v only_o know_v and_o see_v of_o god_n who_o know_v only_o who_o be_v he_o &_o who_o be_v not_o 2._o and_o this_o faithful_a congregation_n whether_o it_o have_v the_o outward_a sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n or_o not_o as_o long_o as_o it_o bear_v about_o this_o body_n of_o sin_n 2._o be_v subject_a to_o many_o infirmity_n but_o for_o christ_n sake_n they_o be_v not_o impute_v for_o when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n that_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o imputation_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v the_o glorious_a congregation_n 5._o and_o i_o do_v also_o believe_v with_o saint_n augustine_n de_fw-fr that_o this_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o barn_n floor_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o in_o it_o until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n 43._o chaff_n shall_v be_v mix_v still_o with_o the_o wheat_n my_o meaning_n be_v this_o that_o in_o the_o church_n both_o good_a and_o bad_a true_a believer_n and_o hypocrite_n be_v contain_v together_o in_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n which_o thing_n we_o do_v learn_v by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o good_a seed_n 1●_o and_o of_o the_o darnell_n and_o of_o the_o net_n that_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n and_o which_o do_v draw_v of_o all_o kind_n of_o fish_n unto_o the_o shore_n but_o we_o must_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n beware_v that_o we_o do_v not_o because_o of_o the_o chaff_n anabaptist_n darnell_n and_o rot_a fish_n severe_a and_o divide_v ourselves_o from_o the_o church_n as_o the_o wicked_a anabaptist_n do_v which_o for_o every_o trifle_a matter_n do_v divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n though_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v never_o so_o fine_o nor_o sincere_o preach_v and_o the_o sacrament_n most_o right_o minister_v according_a to_o the_o institution_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n why_o do_v we_o not_o rather_o follow_v the_o godly_a counsel_n of_o the_o bless_a martyr_n of_o god_n praelatorum_fw-la s._n cyprian_n that_o he_o give_v unto_o we_o although_o say_v he_o darnel_n &_o tare_n be_v see_v to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n yet_o our_o faith_n and_o charity_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v let_v that_o because_o we_o do_v see_v tare_n and_o darnell_n to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v therefore_o forsake_v the_o church_n but_o rather_o we_o ought_v to_o endeavour_n ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v be_v good_a corn_n that_o when_o the_o good_a corn_n be_v gather_v into_o the_o garner_n of_o the_o lord_n 3._o we_o may_v receive_v a_o reward_n of_o our_o labour_n and_o work_v 2._o also_o in_o a_o great_a house_n there_o be_v many_o vessel_n not_o only_o of_o gold_n and_o silver_n but_o
he_o he_o have_v set_v fire_n and_o water_n before_o thou_o reach_v out_o thy_o hand_n unto_o which_o thou_o will_v they_o do_v herein_o show_v their_o ignorance_n if_o the_o matter_n be_v weigh_v answer_n for_o all_o man_n know_v this_o book_n be_v not_o authentical_a nor_o number_v among_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n therefore_o saint_n hierome_n say_v be_v it_o be_v apochrypha_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o thing_n that_o be_v hide_v secret_a or_o dark_a which_o have_v no_o certain_a author_n or_o which_o be_v not_o authentic_a that_o be_v asmuch_o to_o say_v as_o of_o authority_n or_o book_n which_o be_v not_o receive_v by_o a_o common_a consent_n to_o be_v read_v and_o expound_v public_o in_o the_o church_n by_o neither_o yet_o serve_v to_o prove_v any_o point_n of_o christian_n religion_n save_v in_o asmuch_o as_o they_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o other_o scripture_n canonical_a to_o confirm_v the_o same_o or_o rather_o whereon_o they_o be_v ground_v but_o let_v we_o grant_n that_o it_o be_v canonical_a what_o get_v they_o by_o it_o for_o it_o make_v nothing_o for_o their_o purpose_n for_o before_o we_o declare_v how_o it_o make_v nothing_o for_o their_o matter_n we_o must_v consider_v of_o man_n what_o he_o be_v before_o he_o fall_v what_o he_o be_v after_o he_o fall_v 3._o and_o what_o he_o be_v when_o he_o be_v regenerate_v and_o new_a horn_n again_o of_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n if_o you_o mark_v this_o text_n well_o you_o shall_v easy_o perceive_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o man_n as_o he_o be_v before_o his_o fall_n in_o his_o first_o estate_n of_o his_o creation_n and_o be_v in_o his_o original_a innocence_n and_o righteousness_n and_o that_o do_v saint_n augustine_n say_v who_o word_n be_v these_o 8._o freewill_n before_o the_o fall_n be_v a_o upright_a freewill_n before_o which_o fire_n and_o water_n be_v lay_v of_o god_n and_o the_o first_o man_n do_v reach_v his_o hand_n to_o which_o he_o will_v he_o do_v choose_v fire_n and_o forsake_v water_n see_v the_o righteous_a judge_n the_o same_o which_o man_n be_v free_a do_v choose_v he_o do_v receive_v he_o will_v have_v evil_a and_o the_o same_o do_v follow_v he_o 11._o again_o he_o say_v i_o say_v that_o freewill_n be_v in_o that_o man_n which_o be_v create_v first_o for_o he_o be_v so_o make_v that_o nothing_o can_v with_o stand_v his_o will_n if_o he_o will_v have_v keep_v god_n commandment_n 46._o but_o after_o that_o he_o have_v sin_v through_o freewill_n he_o do_v cast_v we_o all_o that_o come_v of_o his_o stock_n into_o necessity_n again_o he_o have_v these_o word_n the_o fault_n which_o follow_v the_o sin_n and_o which_o be_v the_o punishment_n have_v turn_v liberty_n into_o necessity_n again_o man_n use_v freewill_n not_o well_o do_v both_o loose_a it_o and_o himself_o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o have_v these_o word_n verum_fw-la est_fw-la magnas_fw-la arbitrij_fw-la liberi_fw-la vires_fw-la homo_fw-la cunconderetur_fw-la accepit_fw-la sed_fw-la peccando_fw-la amisit_fw-la it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o that_o man_n when_o he_o be_v make_v do_v receive_v great_a strength_n of_o freewill_n but_o he_o lose_v it_o in_o sin_a these_o authority_n of_o saint_n augustine_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v how_o the_o place_n that_o they_o allege_v out_o of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la aught_o to_o be_v understand_v for_o there_o doubtless_o the_o wiseman_n speak_v of_o man_n as_o he_o be_v first_o create_v in_o the_o estate_n of_o innocence_n &_o not_o as_o he_o be_v with_o his_o posterity_n after_o his_o fall_n whereby_o as_o augustine_n say_v all_o man_n have_v lose_v their_o natural_a possibility_n and_o ableness_n and_o their_o natural_a or_o original_a innocence_n and_o so_o ought_v all_o the_o doctor_n to_o be_v understand_v when_o soever_o they_o speak_v of_o freewill_n in_o man_n for_o they_o speak_v of_o that_o freewill_n that_o be_v in_o adam_n before_o his_o fall_n and_o therefore_o saint_n augustine_n when_o he_o say_v admetus_n valentinun_n si_fw-mi non_fw-la est_fw-la liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la ut_fw-la mundum_fw-la iudicat_fw-la deus_fw-la if_o there_o be_v no_o freewill_n how_o shall_v god_n judge_v the_o world_n he_o mean_v there_o that_o god_n shall_v judge_v we_o all_o by_o his_o justice_n in_o that_o freewill_n that_o we_o have_v in_o adam_n before_o his_o fall_n which_o some_o man_n in_o his_o time_n do_v utter_o deny_v any_o freewill_n to_o be_v in_o adam_n at_o all_o upon_o occasion_n whereof_o he_o say_v these_o word_n to_o stay_v the_o contention_n that_o then_o be_v for_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o open_v his_o full_a mind_n and_o judgement_n retract_v say_v cum_fw-la autem_fw-la de_fw-la libera_fw-la voluntate_fw-la recte_fw-la faciendi_fw-la loquimur_fw-la de_fw-la illa_fw-la scilicet_fw-la in_o qua_fw-la homo_fw-la factus_fw-la est_fw-la loquimur_fw-la that_o be_v when_o we_o speak_v of_o freewill_n of_o do_v well_o we_o speak_v and_o mean_v of_o that_o freewill_n in_o which_o man_n be_v first_o make_v before_o his_o fall_n and_o hereto_o saint_n hierome_n agree_v write_v upon_o jeremy_n when_o he_o say_v these_o word_n 23._o and_o therefore_o the_o heretic_n be_v wont_a to_o promise_v felicity_n and_o to_o open_v unto_o sinner_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n say_v thou_o may_v follow_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_o and_o be_v without_o sin_n sith_o that_o thou_o have_v receive_v the_o power_n and_o strength_n of_o freewill_n and_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o law_n whereby_o thou_o be_v able_a to_o obtain_v what_o soever_o thou_o will_v and_o so_o the_o say_v heretic_n do_v deceive_v the_o poor_a simple_a and_o ignorant_a person_n and_o special_o woman_n which_o be_v load_v with_o sin_n be_v lead_v to_o and_o fro_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n deceive_v by_o their_o flattery_n all_o they_o that_o give_v ear_n unto_o they_o here_o we_o see_v that_o saint_n hierome_n do_v call_v they_o all_o heretic_n that_o say_v that_o man_n be_v able_a by_o their_o freewill_n to_o do_v both_o good_a and_o evil_a they_o do_v further_a object_n and_o say_v that_o if_o man_n have_v not_o that_o power_n of_o his_o own_o strength_n objection_n to_o keep_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o perform_v it_o why_o then_o be_v we_o command_v to_o keep_v it_o upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n and_o if_o for_o not_o keep_n we_o shall_v be_v punish_v then_o be_v we_o punish_v wrongful_o and_o god_n shall_v seem_v to_o be_v unrighteous_a to_o give_v we_o a_o law_n and_o to_o require_v performance_n of_o we_o of_o the_o same_o when_o it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n and_o freedom_n to_o observe_v it_o as_o ●e_n command_v and_o again_o what_o need_v so_o many_o exhortation_n to_o turn_v to_o he_o to_o believe_v he_o to_o hear_v to_o repent_v to_o amend_v our_o life_n etc_n etc_n if_o we_o have_v not_o a_o will_n and_o power_n of_o ourselves_o to_o do_v all_o this_o and_o again_o god_n save_v no_o man_n against_o his_o will._n as_o to_o the_o first_o in_o that_o god_n give_v his_o law_n unto_o we_o to_o be_v observe_v answer_n and_o require_v of_o we_o due_a fulfil_a of_o the_o same_o and_o for_o not_o do_v of_o it_o he_o will_v punish_v we_o he_o be_v in_o all_o this_o a_o just_a and_o righteous_a god_n and_o in_o that_o we_o can_v not_o fulfil_v the_o law_n as_o it_o require_v the_o fault_n nor_o hardness_n of_o it_o to_o be_v keep_v be_v not_o of_o god_n nor_o yet_o of_o the_o law_n itself_o for_o the_o law_n of_o itself_o be_v easy_a and_o so_o be_v all_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_o and_o if_o any_o difficulty_n or_o hardness_n be_v in_o they_o it_o come_v not_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n give_v ▪_o unto_o we_o but_o of_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o own_o nature_n therefore_o saint_n paul_n set_v forth_o this_o in_o plain_a word_n say_v what_o soever_o the_o law_n can_v not_o fulfil_v in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v weak_a because_o of_o the_o flesh_n 8._o that_o same_o do_v god_n perform_v send_v his_o son_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n and_o by_o sin_n damn_a sin_n two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v learn_v in_o saint_n paul_n word_n first_o say_n that_o it_o come_v not_o of_o the_o law_n that_o man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o fulfil_v it_o but_o of_o the_o imbecility_n and_o weakness_n of_o the_o flesh_n second_o we_o do_v learn_v that_o god_n do_v by_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n supply_v the_o same_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o our_o flesh_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o fulfil_v god_n therefore_o be_v not_o unrighteous_a to_o ask_v the_o performance_n of_o his_o commandment_n at_o our_o hand_n although_o we_o can_v not_o satisfy_v it_o according_o no_o more_o then_o if_o i_o be_v bind_v to_o pay_v one_o
a_o thousand_o pound_n similitude_n which_o i_o owe_v he_o though_o the_o same_o man_n do_v demand_v this_o of_o i_o and_o i_o be_v not_o able_a to_o satisfy_v he_o or_o pay_v he_o shall_v he_o do_v unjust_o to_o ask_v i_o his_o thousand_o pound_n 18._o i_o trow_v no_o man_n will_v so_o say_v when_o the_o king_n do_v ask_v of_o his_o servant_n the_o ten_o thousand_o talentes_fw-la that_o he_o do_v owe_v unto_o he_o do_v he_o unjust_o or_o wrongful_o no_o certain_o so_o then_o all_o the_o whole_a law_n of_o god_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o commandment_n whereby_o we_o be_v command_v and_o bid_v to_o pay_v that_o unto_o god_o that_o we_o owe_v unto_o he_o for_o man_n be_v bind_v of_o duty_n to_o love_n god_n 6._o with_o all_o his_o heart_n with_o all_o his_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o his_o strength_n and_o his_o neighbour_n as_o his_o own_o self_n 8._o therefore_o saint_n paul_n say_v brethren_n we_o be_v debttour_n but_o not_o unto_o the_o flesh_n shall_v we_o say_v then_o that_o god_n be_v unrighteous_a or_o that_o he_o do_v unjust_o ask_v that_o thing_n of_o we_o that_o we_o do_v owe_v unto_o he_o of_o bind_v duty_n but_o rather_o he_o do_v most_o just_o godly_a and_o righteous_o to_o demand_v such_o thing_n of_o us._n but_o these_o freewill_n papist_n be_v so_o ignorant_a that_o they_o understand_v not_o to_o what_o end_n the_o commandment_n be_v give_v .3_o for_o they_o think_v that_o they_o be_v give_v to_o no_o other_o use_n but_o to_o be_v perform_v saint_n paul_n say_v the_o law_n be_v give_v because_o of_o transgression_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o that_o will_v not_o for_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o love_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n refrain_v from_o do_v of_o evil_a shall_v at_o the_o jest_n for_o fear_n of_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o law_n be_v drive_v to_o keep_v a_o good_a order_n and_o to_o live_v quiet_o among_o themselves_o else_o they_o will_v have_v kill_v one_o a_o other_o and_o no_o man_n shall_v have_v keep_v his_o own_o but_o all_o thing_n shall_v have_v go_v to_o havoc_n second_o to_o declare_v unto_o man_n his_o righteousness_n holiness_n and_o bounteousness_n for_o in_o this_o that_o god_n do_v command_v we_o nothing_o in_o his_o law_n but_o that_o which_o be_v just_a and_o good_a he_o declare_v thereby_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v righteous_a holy_a and_o good_a third_o least_o man_n shall_v seek_v and_o go_v about_o to_o excuse_v themselves_o by_o ignorance_n before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o god_n say_v that_o they_o know_v not_o his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n therefore_o do_v he_o set_v forth_o his_o law_n and_o commandment_n for_o to_o declare_v unto_o man_n what_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o do_v and_o what_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o leave_v undo_v four_o god_n do_v set_v forth_o his_o law_n that_o by_o it_o man_n shall_v be_v bring_v into_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o own_o self_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o look_v glass_n or_o mirror_n wherein_o man_n shall_v behold_v his_o own_o weakness_n imbecility_n and_o unableness_n to_o fulfil_v and_o perform_v the_o thing_n that_o god_o do_v require_v of_o he_o that_o so_o he_o may_v have_v a_o occasion_n to_o humble_a and_o submit_v himself_o for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o the_o law_n that_o do_v discover_v open_a and_o show_v yea_o and_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n our_o own_o filthiness_n and_o abomination_n we_o will_v never_o acknowledge_v ourselves_o to_o be_v sinner_n nor_o yet_o think_v that_o we_o have_v need_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n god_o therefore_o least_o man_n shall_v swell_v against_o he_o do_v demand_v and_o ask_v the_o same_o of_o they_o that_o they_o owe_v unto_o he_o of_o duty_n five_o it_o be_v give_v that_o it_o may_v serve_v we_o for_o a_o schoolmaster_n for_o to_o bring_v we_o unto_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o end_n or_o perform_v of_o the_o law_n 3_n for_o to_o justify_v all_o man_n that_o do_v believe_v for_o when_o we_o have_v once_o learned_a by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n that_o of_o ourselves_o 10._o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o escape_v the_o damnation_n that_o we_o do_v deserve_v by_o the_o break_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n then_o be_v we_o fain_o to_o put_v away_o all_o vain_a confidence_n and_o trust_n that_o we_o have_v in_o our_o own_o strength_n and_o in_o our_o own_o merit_n and_o so_o to_o fly_v unto_o christ_n who_o be_v make_v accurse_v for_o we_o 3_n that_o be_v be_v punish_v and_o slay_v most_o opprobrious_o for_o our_o sake_n that_o we_o may_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o so_o receive_v the_o blessing_n of_o abraham_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n through_o faith_n therefore_o saint_n augustine_n say_v utilitas_fw-la legis_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la hominem_fw-la de_fw-la ●ua_fw-la infirmitate_fw-la convincat_fw-la asellicum_n &_o gratiae_fw-la medicinam_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la est_fw-la implorare_fw-la compella●_n that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v the_o profit_n of_o the_o law_n that_o it_o may_v make_v man_n to_o know_v his_o infirmity_n or_o convict_n he_o of_o his_o weakness_n and_o so_o compel_v he_o to_o seek_v for_o the_o salve_n and_o medicine_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o again_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v oh_o homo_fw-la in_fw-la praeceptione_fw-la cognosce_fw-la quid_fw-la debeas_fw-la agere_fw-la in_o correptione_fw-la 3._o cognosce_fw-la tuo_fw-la vitio_fw-la non_fw-la habere_fw-la in_o oration_n cognosce_fw-la unde_fw-la accipias_fw-la quod_fw-la vis_fw-la habere_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v oh_o man_n know_v in_o the_o commandment_n what_o thou_o ought_v to_o do_v in_o rebuke_v know_v that_o through_o thy_o own_o fault_n thou_o haste_v it_o not_o and_o in_o prayer_n know_v whence_o thou_o must_v receive_v that_o thing_n optatum_fw-la that_o thou_o will_v have_v again_o danda_fw-la itaque_fw-la fuerat_fw-la lex_fw-la quae_fw-la manifestius_fw-la sibi_fw-la ipsum_fw-la ostenderet_fw-la hominem_fw-la ne_fw-la superbus_fw-la animus_n humanus_fw-la à_fw-la seipso_fw-la se_fw-la posse_fw-la esse_fw-la iustum_fw-la putaret_fw-la therefore_o be_v the_o law_n give_v which_o shall_v more_o manifest_o show_v man_n in_o himself_o least_o he_o shall_v be_v puff_v up_o or_o high_o mind_v that_o he_o shall_v think_v himself_o as_o of_o himself_o that_o he_o can_v or_o may_v be_v righteous_a or_o just_a and_o again_o he_o have_v these_o word_n the_o law_n be_v give_v for_o this_o purpose_n 11●_n that_o be_v shall_v make_v thou_o of_o a_o high_a mind_v person_n lowly_a and_o humble_a and_o that_o it_o shall_v show_v unto_o thou_o that_o thou_o haste_v not_o of_o thy_o own_o strength_n unto_o righteousness_n that_o so_o be_v poor_a bare_a and_o naked_a thou_o shall_v ●●ie_v unto_o grace_n and_o then_o mourn_a himself_o unto_o god_n he_o say_v so_o do_v oh_o lord_n so_o do_v oh_o merciful_a lord_n command_v that_o thing_n that_o thing_n that_o can_v not_o be_v fulfil_v but_o through_o thy_o grace_n that_o when_o man_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o fulfil_v it_o by_o their_o own_o strength_n all_o mouth_n may_v be_v stop_v and_o no_o man_n shall_v seem_v unto_o himself_o to_o be_v high_a let_v all_o man_n be_v little_a one_o humble_a and_o lowly_a let_v all_o the_o world_n be_v subject_n unto_o god_n many_o other_o place_n may_v i_o bring_v out_o of_o this_o augustine_n the_o golden_a doctor_n but_o these_o shall_v now_o suffice_v as_o for_o exhortation_n to_o turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n to_o hear_v to_o repent_v will_n and_o believe_v as_o it_o be_v require_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n argue_v not_o a_o liberty_n or_o prove_v thereby_o that_o we_o have_v strength_n of_o ourselves_o to_o do_v all_o these_o thing_n or_o that_o when_o grace_n be_v offer_v we_o have_v power_n to_o receive_v it_o of_o our_o own_o strength_n for_o rather_o we_o be_v teach_v thereby_o to_o acknowledge_v our_o infirmity_n and_o unableness_n and_o not_o that_o we_o be_v able_a or_o can_v do_v it_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v command_v and_o speak_v except_o god_n do_v work_v inward_o with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n in_o our_o heart_n which_o thing_n saint_n paul_n declare_v 15._o when_o he_o exhort_v the_o faithful_a to_o abide_v and_o persevere_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o paul_n in_o a_o other_o place_n sheweth_z from_o whence_o that_o virtue_n of_o constancy_n and_o perseverance_n do_v c●me_v final_o my_o brethren_n say_v he_o be_v strong_a in_o the_o lord_n 6._o again_o for_o this_o cause_n do_v i_o bow_v my_o knee_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o will_v grant_v you_o accord_v to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n that_o you_o may_v be_v strengthen_v with_o might_n by_o the_o spirit_n in_o
august_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la eccle_n cap._n 1._o august_n count_v cr●●co_n g●am_fw-la lib._n 1_o cap_n 33._o be_v unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cap._n 16._o chrisost._n in_o mat._n ho._n 49._o august_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la eccle_n cap._n 3._o in_o eodem_fw-la capi_fw-la ambro._n hexameron_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 8._o ephe._n 5._o behold_v proud_a lucifer_n of_o rome_n sylvester_n pri●rias_fw-la count_n lutherum_n august_n count_v epistolan_n fundament_n cap._n 5._o august_n in_o psal_n 57_o the_o cause_n that_o move_v s._n august_n to_o say_v he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n without_o the_o church_n ●erson_n lib._n de_fw-fr spirituali_fw-la vita_fw-la anima_fw-la lectione_fw-la 2._o john_n 4._o john_n 1._o 1._o peter_n 3._o the_o true_a church_n have_v three_o office_n as_o touch_v the_o word_n of_o god._n first_o 〈◊〉_d second_o office_n matth._n 28._o three_o office_n the_o aucthotie_n of_o the_o true_a church_n do_v consist_v in_o four●_n thing_n act_n 6._o tim._n 3._o titus_z 1._o hebre._n 5._o act_n 6._o 2._o cor._n 11._o matth._n 28._o 2._o cor._n 2._o matth._n 18._o 1._o cor._n 5._o 2._o cor._n 2._o 1._o cor._n 14._o 1._o thess._n 5._o 1._o john_n 4._o act_n 15._o august_n count_n ▪_o maxim._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 14._o hieroni._n in_o epist._n ad_fw-la ephe._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 5._o origen_n in_o episto_n ad_fw-la rom._n lib._n 10._o cap._n 16._o when_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v when_o the_o church_n can_v and_o do_v err_v the_o whole_a universal_a church_n do_v never_o fall_v away_o from_o god._n mark_v of_o the_o true_a church_n why_o it_o be_v call_v the_o invisible_a church_n john_n 10._o ●_o tim._n 2._o 2._o cor._n 5._o ephe._n 2._o eph●_n 5._o august_n de_fw-fr fi●e_fw-fr ad_fw-la petrun_v cap._n 43._o matth._n 1●_o we_o must_v not_o divide_v ourselves_o from_o the_o church_n because_o the_o wicked_a be_v among_o we_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n cyprian_n de_fw-fr simplicitat●_n praelatorum_fw-la matth._n 3._o 2._o tim._n 2._o communion_n of_o saint_n john_n 15._o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n galat._n 2._o esai_n 43._o rom._n 3._o matth._n 1._o act_n 4._o barnarde_n sup●●_n canti_fw-la ser._n 61._o whence_o this_o word_n iustificare_fw-la have_v be_v borrow_v and_o what_o it_o signify_v rom._n 4●_o ▪_o psal._n 32._o james._n 2._o objection_n answer_n gen._n 15._o rom._n 4._o hebre._n 11._o note_v this_o diligent_o august_n in_o lib._n 83._o questionum_fw-la questio_fw-la 76._o thomas_n de_fw-fr aquino_n in_o epist._n jacobi_fw-la cap._n 5._o rom._n 4._o psal._n 51_o ▪_o this_o word_n iustificare_fw-la be_v take_v of_o s._n paul_n in_o one_o sense_n and_o of_o s._n james_n in_o another_o james._n 2._o act_n 13._o rom._n 3._o ephe._n 2._o ephe._n 2._o revel_v 22._o ambro._n de_fw-fr vocatio_fw-la gent._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 5._o job._n 9_o esai_n 64._o luk._n 17._o origen_n in_o matth._n tract_n ●_o august_n in_o psal._n 94._o august_n epist._n 52._o ad_fw-la macedon_n rom._n 5._o august_n in_o psal._n 137._o hieroni_n in_o esai_n cap._n 64._o origen_n ad_fw-la rom._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 4._o origen_n ad_fw-la rom._n lib._n 9_o cap._n 10._o barnard_n super_fw-la cant_fw-la serm._n 67._o walden_n count_v wiclesium_fw-la rom._n 8._o rom._n 10._o objection_n rom._n 8._o papist_n do_v call_v we_o solifidians_n answer_n this_o word_n gratis_o be_v of_o as_o great_a force_n as_o this_o word_n ●ola_fw-la rom._n 3._o 1._o peter_n 1._o rom._n 3._o papist_n like_v to_o arian_n heretic_n titus_n 3._o ephe._n 2._o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n do_v exclude_v all_o ●●erites_n from_o the_o justification_n of_o man._n rom._n 8._o gala●_n 4._o ambro._n in_o epist._n ad_fw-la rom._n cap._n 4._o eodem_fw-la loco_fw-la in_o epist._n ad_fw-la rom._n cap._n 9_o theo._n de_fw-fr curandis_fw-la graecorum_n affectibus_fw-la lib._n 7._o basil_n de_fw-fr humilitate_fw-la nazianzenus_n origen_n in_o epi._n ad_fw-la rom._n cap._n 3._o lib._n 3._o hesychi_n in_o leviti_fw-la lib._n 4._o chrisost._n in_o epist._n ad_fw-la galat._n cap._n 3._o hieroni._n in_o epist._n ad_fw-la rom._n cap._n 10._o hylari_fw-la canon●_n nono_fw-la in_o ma●_n obiecttion_n ▪_o revel_v 14._o matth._n 10._o 1._o cor._n 15._o matth._n 5._o hebre._n 6._o answer_n gregor_n nazi_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la baptisma●e_fw-la luk._n 17._o hylar_n in_o psal_n ●18_n basil_n in_o psal_n 32._o august_n confession_n 10._o good_a work_n of_o the_o papist_n esai_n 1._o good_a work_v that_o god_n do_v require_v of_o us._n 1._o peter_n 2._o matth._n 5._o galat._n 5._o matth._n 25_o ▪_o galat._n 5._o ephe._n 2._o why_o god_n do_v crown_v his_o gift_n in_o we_o august_n in_o psal._n 109._o august_n in_o psal._n 32._o ●_o cor._n 4._o rom._n 11._o august_n in_o quinquagintis_n hom._n ho._n 14._o august_n in_o psal_n 98._o psal_n 70._o august_n in_o psal._n 107._o barnard_n super_fw-la cant_fw-la serm._n 61._o 1._o tim._n 6._o psal._n 16._o a_o similitude_n a_o reward_n never_o stir_v up_o the_o godly_a to_o seek_v for_o righteousness_n god_n promise_n very_o ne●ssary_a to_o we_o all_o what_o the_o nature_n of_o merit_n be_v rom._n 8._o rom._n 3._o phil._n 2._o ephe._n 2._o august_n in_o psal_n 32._o the_o imperfection_n of_o our_o ●w●_n work_v esai_n 64._o august_n lib._n 9_o confession_n barnard_n in_o serm._n omnium_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la 1._o esai_n 64._o psal._n 14.3_o a_o similitude_n mark_v this_o well_o august_n ▪_o in_o psal_n 31_o ▪_o luk._n 18._o a_o syllogism_n john_n 15._o matth._n 9_o john_n 7._o august_n in_o tract_n 33._o john_n 1._o objection_n john_n 20._o answer_n three_o manner_n of_o power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n esai_n 43._o czech_n 18._o luk._n 5._o hieroni._n in_o matth._n cap._n 16._o senten_n 4._o distinct_a 18._o nec_fw-la ideo_fw-la august_n in_o psal_n 101._o hieroni._n in_o matth._n cap._n 16._o act_n 3._o beatus_fw-la revanus_n in_fw-la argum_fw-la libelli_fw-la tertul._n de_fw-la poenitentia_fw-la distinct._n 1._o de_fw-la poenitentia_fw-la in_o gloss._n petr._n s●ten_o 4._o do_v 17._o quid_fw-la ergo_fw-la ▪_o de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la do_v 1._o quidam_fw-la chrisost._n in_o psal_n 50._o hom._n 2._o &_o hom._n de_fw-fr praenit_fw-la &_o confession_n matth._n 6._o coloss_n 3._o psal._n 103._o objection_n phil._n 3._o answer_n certainty_n of_o our_o salvation_n rom._n 8._o job._n 13._o job._n 19_o psal._n 70._o tertul._n count_v martio_n lib._n 5._o cypr._n de_fw-fr mortalit_fw-la sermo_n 4._o prospero_n de_fw-fr promise_v &_o praedictio_fw-la dei_fw-la par_fw-fr 1._o cap._n 16._o august_n de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la dorm_n serm._n 28._o august_n in_o io._n tract_n 22._o basil._n de_fw-fr humilitate_fw-la ambro._n de_fw-fr jaco._n &_o vita_fw-la beat●_n barn._n in_o canti_fw-la cantico_fw-la ser._n 61._o cypr._n de_fw-fr simpli_fw-la praelato_fw-la matth._n 28._o james._n 1._o gen._n ●_o deut._n 29._o eeze._n 36._o &_o 11._o psal._n 51._o jere._n 32._o jere._n 31._o jere._n 10._o prou._n 21._o psal._n 119._o john_n 3._o john_n 6._o matth._n 16._o john_n 6._o 1._o cor._n 2._o 2._o cor._n 3._o phil._n 2._o rom._n 9_o 2._o cor._n 3._o john_n 8._o what_o we_o be_v as_o long_o as_o we_o be_v without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 2._o cor._n 3._o the_o definition_n of_o free_a will_n after_o s._n august_n 1._o cor._n 15._o galat._n 2._o objection_n eccle._n 15._o gen._n 1._o jere._n 1._o answer_n what_o this_o word_n apocrypha_fw-la be_v canon_n be_v a_o greek_a word_n and_o signify_v a_o rule_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n by_o or_o to_o try_v any_o matter_n or_o prove_v the_o spirit_n by_o to_o lead_v our_o life_n by_o john_n 3._o august_n de_fw-mi can●ico_fw-mi none_n ▪_o cap._n 8._o cont._n fortu_fw-la disput_fw-la 11._o lib._n the_o perfect_a iusliciae_fw-la in_o en●heridion_fw-la ad_fw-la laur._n ca._n 30_o august_n de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la apost_n serm._n 2._o look_v for_o more_o ▪_o authority_n in_o my_o book_n call_v the_o poor_a man_n garden_n for_o this_o matter_n de_fw-fr eccl._n dogm_n cap._n 32._o enchirid._n ad_fw-la lauren._n ca._n 30._o the_o father_n speak_v of_o man_n freewill_n before_o the_o fall_n whensoever_o they_o speak_v or_o write_v of_o freewill_n in_o man._n august_n ad_fw-la valen._n epi._n 46._o august_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 18._o de_fw-la libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la &_o in_o lib._n 1._o retract_v hieroni._n in_o jere._n cap._n 23._o objection_n answer_n rom._n 8._o two_o thing_n to_o be_v learn_v in_o s._n p●ules_n say_n a_o similitude_n matth._n 18._o deut._n 6._o rom._n 8._o the_o law_n have_v more_o end_n than_o one_o galat._n .3_o galat._n 3_n rom._n 10._o galat._n 3_n epist._n 200._o a●_z asellicum_n august_n de_fw-fr correptione_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la cap._n 3._o epist._n 157._o ad_fw-la optatum_fw-la august_n i●_z psal_n 11●_n commandment_n and_o exhortation_n prove_v not_o the_o liberty_n of_o will_n act_n 15._o ephe._n 6._o ephe._n 4._o 1._o thess._n 1._o 2._o cor._n ●_o act_n 17._o matth._n 9_o august_n in_o solutionibus_fw-la quest_n hyla●i●_n quest_n 1._o &_o in_o epist._n 89._o libro_fw-la 10._o confession_n ca._n